warrior traders: a comparative study of early seventeenth...
Post on 18-Apr-2020
2 Views
Preview:
TRANSCRIPT
WARRIOR TRADERS: A COMPARATIVE STUDY OF EARLY SEVENTEENTH-CENTURY FRENCH AND ENGLISH NORTH AMERICAN TRADE AND
COLONIZATION
by
Kilroy Abney
Submitted in partial fulfilment of the requirements for the degree of Master of Arts
at
Dalhousie University Halifax, Nova Scotia
August 2012
© Copyright by Kilroy Abney, 2012
DALHOUSIE UNIVERSITY
DEPARTMENT OF HISTORY
The undersigned hereby certify that they have read and recommend to the Faculty of Graduate Studies for acceptance a thesis entitled “WARRIOR TRADERS: A COMPARATIVE STUDY OF EARLY SEVENTEENTH-CENTURY FRENCH AND ENGLISH NORTH AMERICAN TRADE AND COLONIZATION” by Kilroy Abney in partial fulfilment of the requirements for the degree of Master of Arts.
Dated: August 10, 2012
Supervisor: _________________________________
Readers: _________________________________
_________________________________
DALHOUSIE UNIVERSITY
DATE: August 10, 2012
AUTHOR: Kilroy Abney
TITLE: WARRIOR TRADERS: A COMPARATIVE STUDY OF EARLY SEVENTEENTH-CENTURY FRENCH AND ENGLISH NORTH AMERICAN TRADE AND COLONIZATION
DEPARTMENT OR SCHOOL: Department of History
DEGREE: MA CONVOCATION: October YEAR: 2012
Permission is herewith granted to Dalhousie University to circulate and to have copied for non-commercial purposes, at its discretion, the above title upon the request of individuals or institutions. I understand that my thesis will be electronically available to the public. The author reserves other publication rights, and neither the thesis nor extensive extracts from it may be printed or otherwise reproduced without the author’s written permission. The author attests that permission has been obtained for the use of any copyrighted material appearing in the thesis (other than the brief excerpts requiring only proper acknowledgement in scholarly writing), and that all such use is clearly acknowledged.
_______________________________ Signature of Author
ABSTRACT ........................................................................................................................ v
LIST OF ABBREVIATIONS USED ............................................................................... vi
ACKNOWLEDGEMENTS ............................................................................................. vii
CHAPTER 1: INTRODUCTION ...................................................................................... 1
CHAPTER 2: THE WESTERN TRADE, THE ENGLISH TRADE VOYAGES TO NORTH AMERICA AND THE FOUNDATIONS OF THE JAMESTOWN AND SAGADAHOC COLONIES 1602-1609 ......................................................................... 28
2.1 English North American Trade Voyages and the Establishment of Trade Colonies ............................................................................................................... 30
2.2 Trade Voyage influence on the Economic Goals of Jamestown and Sagadahoc ............................................................................................................ 38
2.3 English Perceptions of the North American Climate and Native American Behaviour ............................................................................................................ 52
CHAPTER 3: PORT ROYAL, JAMESTOWN, AND SAGADAHOC: THE COMPARATIVE CONTEXT OF FRENCH AND ENGLISH NORTH AMERICAN TRADE AND COLONIZATION 1580-1609 ............................................ 69
3.1 Competitive Sixteenth and Seventeenth-Century French and English Trade Voyages ............................................................................................................... 72
3.2 The Economic Influence of Trade Voyages on Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc ............................................................................................................ 80
3.3 French and English Perceptions of the North American Climate and Native Characteristics ..................................................................................................... 94
3.4 The Limitations of National Unity in French and English North American Colonization ...................................................................................................... 104
CHAPTER 4: THE ROLE OF PORT ROYAL, JAMESTOWN, AND SAGADAHOC IN THE DEVELOPMENT OF FRENCH AND ENGLISH SEVENTEENTH-CENTURY NORTH AMERICAN NATIVE RELATIONS ............ 115
4.1 The Misrepresentation of Native Relations in Sagadahoc and Port Royal ....... 117
4.2 Conflict in Jamestown: the Limits of European Experience and Agency ......... 137
4.3 The Impact of Native Societies on French and English Colonization .............. 152
CHAPTER 5: CONCLUSION ....................................................................................... 174
APPENDIX A Map: Natives, French, and English in North America, 1600-1609....... 184
APPENDIX B Glossary of Names ............................................................................... 185
BIBLIOGRAPHY .......................................................................................................... 191
This thesis examines French and English trade voyages and trade colonies in North American during the late sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries, and French and English relations with Native Americans. The colonies of Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc included members of previous French and English trade voyages and depended on the experience and information gained during trade voyages to formulate their economic objectives and colonial policies. French and English North American activity was intrinsically connected in this era through a plethora of amiable and competitive associations. National, transnational, and regional frameworks are all necessary in explaining Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc. French and English interaction with Native American groups during these voyages and colonies was distinctly similar, and the diverse cultures of the native Mi’kmaq, Eastern Abenaki, Powhatans, and Armouchiquois, rather than the divisions between French and English culture, were central in shaping colonist-Native relations in the seventeenth century.
Champlain Volume I-III Champlain, Samuel, Henry Percival Biggar et al. The works of Samuel de Champlain. Volume I-III. Toronto: Champlain Society, 1922.
DSOD Heidenreich Conrad and Janet Ritch. Samuel de Champlain before 1604: Des Sauvages and Other Documents Related to the Period. Toronto: McGill-Queen’s University Press, 2010.
ENEV Quinn, David B, and Alison M. Quinn. The English New England Voyages, 1602-1608. London: Hakluyt Society, 1983.
Lescarbot Volume I-III Lescarbot, Marc, Henry Percival Biggar, and W. L. Grant. History of New France. Volume I-III. Toronto: Champlain Society, 1907.
NAW Volume 3 Quinn, David B, Alison M. Quinn, and Susan Hillier. New American World A Documentary History of North America to 1612: Volume 3: English Plans for North America. The Roanoke Voyages. New England Ventures. New York: Arno Press, 1979.
NAW Volume 5 Quinn, David B, Alison M. Quinn, and Susan Hillier. New American World: A Documentary History of North America to 1612: Volume 5: The Extension of Settlement in Florida, Virginia, and the Spanish Southwest. New York: Arno Press, 1979.
First and foremost, I would like to thank my supervisor Justin Roberts for his constant feedback and support in writing this thesis. His advice and help has been indispensible in furthering my scholarly pursuits. Jerry Bannister, Alexandra Montgomery, and Nathan VanderMeulen have provided me with invaluable help and an exceptional community of British Atlantic scholars in which to thrive. I would also like to express my gratitude to the Colonial Williamsburg Foundation and the staff of the John D. Rockefellar Jr. Library for their generous support and assistance during my time as a Gilder Lehrman Fellow. I would like to thank Jessica Stern for encouraging me to pursue this project. I am also indebted to Colin Mitchell for his help in formulating the preliminary direction of this thesis during our graduate seminars. I would also like to thank Jack Crowley, Jerry Bannister, and Justin Roberts for serving as the readers for this thesis, and for their insightful comments and help.
CHAPTER 1: INTRODUCTION
In 1565 the English captain John Hawkins visited the Huguenot colony of Fort
Caroline along the Florida coast.1 The French and English met on friendly terms and
shared provisions during Hawkins’ stay.2 The French commander René Goulaine de
Laudonniere and his men were desperately low on supplies, and Hawkins offered to
return the colonists to France.3 In the end Laudonniere purchased one of Hawkins’ ships
and provisions for the colonists’ evacuation to France on credit, and French cannons were
exchanged for two Englishmen as a mutual security.4
Half a century later, in 1613 the English captain Samuel Argall attacked the
French colony of Saint Sauveur in Acadia taking the Jesuit Father Biard and fourteen
French captives to Jamestown.5 Argall sailed north a second time in 1613 and burned the
momentarily unoccupied colony of Port Royal.6 When the French colonists returned to
Port Royal, Argall met privately with their commander Biencourt.7 A French account
claims certain Frenchmen attempted to persuade the colonists to join the English, and an
anonymous English account alleges Biencourt offered to operate Port Royal under the
protection of the King of England.8 During their meeting Argall was apologetic
concerning his orders to remove the French colony and Biencourt blamed the Jesuits,
1 David B. Quinn, Explorers and Colonies: America 1500-1625 (London: The Hambledon Press, 1990), 268.
2 Marc Lescarbot, Henry Percival Biggar, and W. L. Grant, History of New France, Volume I (Toronto: Champlain Society, 1907)115
3 Lescarbot, Vol. I, 116; Quinn, Explorers and Colonies, 268. 4 Ibid. 5 Marc Lescarbot, Henry Percival Biggar, and W. L. Grant, History of New France, Volume III (Toronto: Champlain Society, 1914), 64-6; Pierre Biard, “Letter from Father Pierre Biard to the Reverend Father Provincial, at Paris, January 1612,” in Auguste Carayon,
(Paris: L'ecureux Libraire, 1864), 5-12. 6 Ibid. 7 Jean de Biencourt de Poutrincourt, “Complaint made before the Judge of the Admiralty of Guienne, June 18th 1614,” in Lescarbot, Vol. III, 70.
8 Jean de Biencourt de Poutrincourt, “Poutrincourt’s Letter to Marc Lescarbot, 1614,” in Lescarbot, Vol. III, 67; “Briefe intelligence from Virginia by Letters, a supplement of French-Virginian Occurrants,” in Samuel Purchas, Hakluytus Posthumus or Purchas His Pilgrimes, Volume XIX (Glasgow: MacMillan and Co.,1891), 214-16.
including Father Biard, rather than the English for his dire situation.9 In the end Argall
left Biencourt and his colonists at Port Royal without supplies, warning Biencourt that if
they were found there again they would be considered enemies.10
French and English colonial relations had undergone a drastic change as the
sixteenth-century cooperation between French and English Protestants gave way to
imperial competition over the contested coastline of northeastern North America in the
early seventeenth century. Despite this transformation, the imperial competition which
marked Argall and Biencourt’s meeting remained relatively restrained, and this imperial
rivalry coexisted with contention among French factions and transnational interaction
between the French and English colonists. French and English North American activity
remained closely linked in the time between Hawkins’ meeting with Laudonniere and
Argall’s meeting with Biencourt.
In the early seventeenth century, France and England underwent a simultaneous
transition from seasonal North American trade voyages to colonies intended to combine
trade with territorial possession. The three colonies of Port Royal, Jamestown, and
Sagadahoc all included previous members of French and English trade voyages and
depended on the information gained during these trade voyages to formulate their
economic objectives and colonial policies. The interconnected nature of the French and
English establishment of trade colonies in the early seventeenth century has been
underappreciated and understudied by scholars addressing the colonies of Port Royal,
9 Ibid. 10 Ibid.
Jamestown, and Sagadahoc.11 The imperial competition between France and England in
the early seventeenth century coexisted with transnational connections between the
French and English and regional divisions within these groups. In highlighting the
similarities and connections between French and English colonization efforts, this study
challenges the scholarship’s divide of French and English Native-relations in these three
colonies, and instead stresses the influence of Native societies and actions on forming
colonist-Native relations in Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc.
Scholars using macro scopes often differentiate between Iberian and Northern
European efforts to colonize the Americas in the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries.12
Spain and Portugal divided the extra-European world in the 1494 Treaty of Tordesillas.
Spain grew rich off its American silver mines of Potosí and Zacatecas in the sixteenth
century, and used this vast wealth to pursue a universal monarchy in Europe.13 The rising
power of Spain created anti-Spanish solidarity among England, France, and the United
Providences as the Spanish monarchy claimed the Portuguese throne in 1580, defeated
the French corsair fleet in 1582, attempted to squash the Protestant Dutch rebellion, and
sent the Spanish Armada against England in 1588.14 The commonality of the Spanish
11 David B. Quinn, North America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements: The Norse Voyages to 1612 (New York: Harper & Row, 1977), 443-445; Karen O. Kupperman, The Jamestown Project (Cambridge: Belknap Press, 2007), 190, 168; Helen C. Rountree, and E. Randolph Turner, Before and After Jamestown Virginia's Powhatans and Their Predecessors (Gainesville: University Press of Florida, 2002), 51-54; April L. Hatfield, Atlantic Virginia: Intercolonial Relations in the Seventeenth Century (Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 2004), 1-8; Marcel Trudel, Histoire De La Nouvelle-France: II Le Comptoir 1604-1627, Volume II (Montreal: Fides, 1966), 2, 19-21, 43, 58; Henry Percival Biggar, The Early Trading Companies of New France: A Contribution to the History of Commerce and Discovery in North America (New York: Argonaut Press, 1965), 24, 38-9, 45, 63.
12 Wim Klooster, “The Northern European Atlantic World,” in Nicholas Canny and Philip Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2011), 165-168.
13 J.H. Elliott, Empires of the Atlantic World: Britain and Spain in America 1492-1830 (New Haven: Yale University Press, 2006), 23.
enemy is clear in the English, French, and United Providence’s alliance against Spain in
the 1596 Treaty of The Hague.15 The Northern Europeans challenged Spanish power in
the Americas through plundering Spain’s colonies and treasure fleets and attempting to
repeat their discoveries of mineral wealth in the Americas.16
The similarities between the French and English colonization efforts in the
Americas in the second half of the sixteenth century and the early seventeenth century
were substantial. Both countries sponsored repeated attempts at colonization to challenge
Iberian power in the Americas through the establishment of fortified bases. Bases such as
English Roanoke and French Charles Fort, located on the coast of the Carolinas, were
intended to claim land and serve as refitting and resupply bases to allow their privateer
fleets to operate year round in the Caribbean against the Spanish colonies and treasure
ships. These were not just superficial similarities. Protestant Huguenot merchants had a
strong presence in France’s port cities, and were central to France’s American
enterprises.17 These Huguenots maintained close ties to England through a mixture of
mutual support and economic competition. The English and Huguenots also cooperated
in North American colonization efforts.18 The English dispatched a five-ship resupply
fleet to support the Huguenot colony of Charles Fort, and provided help to the
14 Penry Williams, The Later Tudors: England, 1547-1603 (Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1995), 283-4; Philip Boucher, “Revisioning the ‘French Atlantic’: or. How to Think about the French Presence in the Atlantic 1550-1625,” in Peter Mancall ed., The Atlantic World and Virginia, 1550-1624 (Chapel Hill: Omohundro Institute of Early American history and Culture, 2007), 293-4; For discussion of the Spanish Armada see, Garrett Mattingly, The Armada (Boston: Houghton Mifflin, 1959).
15 Thomas Benjamin, The Atlantic World: Europeans, Africans, Indians and Their Shared History, 1400-1900 (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2009), 235.
16 Ibid., 215. 17 Benjamin, The Atlantic World, 227; Boucher, “Revisioning the ‘French Atlantic,” in Mancall ed., The
Atlantic World and Virginia, 277. 18 Robert Knecht, The French Civil Wars 1562-1598 (New York: Pearson Education, 2000), 256-260.
beleaguered Huguenot colony of Fort Caroline.19 Despite this cooperation, England and
France increasingly became direct competitors in North America due to political changes
in Europe.
During the French religious civil war of 1585-1598, Queen Elizabeth became a
staunch ally of Henri, the Huguenot King of Navarre and claimant to the French throne.
Following the defeat of the Spanish Armada in 1588 the English became directly
involved in the French civil war in 1589, sending an army of 5,200 to relieve the port city
of Dieppe in Normandy.20 In 1590 England expanded their involvement, sending 4,000
soldiers to Brittany, and launched a joint attack on the city of Rouen with Henri.21
Despite English support, the war remained a stalemate. In 1593 Henri converted to
Catholicism to end this stalemate and secure the French throne.22 Henri’s conversion and
the French peace agreement with Spain in 1598 would end this era of close ties between
England and France. The English no longer trusted the now Catholic Henri.23 The
acceptance of a former Huguenot as king and the 1598 Edict of Nantes began an era of
religious coexistence in France, binding the Huguenots to the French monarchy and
ending their cooperative relationship with England.24 France and England would continue
19 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 45; Boucher, “Revisioning the ‘French Atlantic,” 288. 20 Knecht, The French Wars of Religion, 241. 21 Ibid., 257-260. 22 Ibid., 264, 269. 23 Ibid., 274 24 Ibid., 274-5; David B. Quinn, England and the Discovery of America, 1481-1620, From the Bristol
Voyages of the Fifteenth Century to the Pilgrim Settlement at Plymouth: the Exploration, Exploitation, and Trial-and-Error Colonization of North America by the English (New York: Knopf, 1974),403; Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 4. This situation in France was relatively short lived, and after the assassination of Henri in 1610 the religious peace and the Huguenots’ loyalty to the crown both began to deteriorate. See, Elizabeth Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits: Quests for Glory and Adventure in the Early Days of New France (Toronto: University of Toronto Press, 1986), 155; Boucher, “Revisioning the ‘French Atlantic,” in Mancall ed., The Atlantic World and Virginia, 289-9.
to exploit North America through trade voyages in the early seventeenth century, but
increasingly as rivals.
France and England were undergoing expansion in the early seventeenth century.
France had its sights on absorbing Northern Italy, and continued to focus on South
American colonization with 1,300 settlers in St. Louis, Brazil in 1613.25 England was
heavily invested in the subjugation and colonization of Ireland and commercial expansion
in the Mediterranean and Far East.26 North America trade and colonization was a
secondary focus of the French and English, but was of considerable importance in France
and England’s competition with each other and in their attempts to imitate Spain’s
American empire.
Beyond the contemporary importance of French and English activity in North
America, France and England’s North American trade and colonization efforts in the
early seventeenth century provide an important opportunity to conduct a comparative
study of simultaneous colonization efforts. The French colony of Port Royal Acadia was
founded in 1604, and in 1607 English colonists founded Jamestown and Sagadahoc in
Virginia.27 These colonies mark the beginning of France and England’s continuous
involvement in North American colonization; a comparative perspective of these colonies
provides insight into the larger development of France and England’s North American
colonies. This thesis focuses on the era beginning with the French revival of North
American trade voyages in 1598 and ending with the second charter of Jamestown in
25 Ibid., 301. 26 Nicholas Canny, Making Ireland British: 1580-1650 (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2001), 165;
Andrew Hadfield, “Irish Colonies and the Americas,” in Robert and John W. Sweet eds., Envisioning an English Empire (Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 2005), 174.
27 Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, I-II.
1609. This timeframe allows for the careful consideration of the complex context of this
transformative era in French and English North American activity.
Within this thesis the term North America is used as a geographic category which
includes the regions of New France, Acadia, and Virginia that extended along the coast of
the North American mainland from the Gulf of St. Lawrence to the northern limits of
Spanish Florida. Acadia and the north of Virginia were divided from Jamestown in the
southern part of Virginia by the use of different transatlantic routes, but the English
conceptualized Virginia as a coherent whole and the geographic overlap between
northern Virginia and Acadia allows these areas to be considered jointly. This thesis uses
the term colonies rather than the term settlements to refer to Port Royal, Jamestown, and
Sagadahoc to avoid confusion with the settlement interpretation of English colonization
which stresses agriculture and large-scale migration over trade. Similarly, while this
thesis will distinguish between colonies and voyages it is important to note that colonies
were dependant on transatlantic resupply voyages and had a strong focus on coastal trade
and exploration voyages. Trade voyages also continued to operate independently from
colonies in the Caribbean and the Newfoundland fishery.
Chapters Two and Three utilize French sources in English translation. Direct
quotations of French sources are presented in English within the text, and the original
French text is provided in the footnotes. In each case this study consulted the original
French text with the use of the University of Chicago’s French dictionary, the ARTFL
Project Dictionnaires d'autrefois. This study also utilized translator’s notes and secondary
literature relating to major French sources including the works of Samuel de Champlain
and Marc Lescarbot. Throughout this study the many interpretive limitations relating to
using these works in translation are recognized, and no literary analysis is attempted
without the support of secondary sources. Any study working in the late sixteenth and
early seventeenth centuries will encounter interpretive difficulties in the primary source
record including authors’ errors and misinterpretations, biases relating to documents’
purposes, incomplete source material, and sources in French and English inevitably
possess debatable meaning in certain instances.
`Chapter Four uses European accounts to discuss Native groups including the
Powhatans of Virginia and Mi’kmaq of Acadia. This study considers the context in which
these sources were produced and the motivations and possible biases of the authors, but
ultimately these European sources have limitations in demonstrating the perspective of
Native groups. The difficulty in demonstrating Native agency through European sources
is reduced through the use of a comparative scope utilizing multiple French and English
sources describing colonists’ interactions with the same Native groups including the
Mi’kmaq, Eastern Abenaki, and Armouchiquois. Archaeological and anthropological
scholarship is consulted to help determine the culture and social structures of these
Native groups. Despite these various means of circumventing the biases and limits of
European sources, determining the perspectives of Native groups necessarily requires a
high degree of inference. In attempting to determine Natives’ perspectives this study will
fully consider the context presented by the primary source material and existing scholarly
interpretations of these Natives’ actions.
In 1606, King James I of England and his ministers issued a royal charter creating
the dual Virginia Companies.28 The First Company based in London was to establish a
colony in the southern half of Virginia, while the Second Company based in Plymouth
and representing the West Country interests was to establish a colony in the northern half
of Virginia.29 The creation of the Virginia Companies represented a resumption of North
American colonization after a long break following the loss of Sir Walter Raleigh’s
second colony of Roanoke in 1587. The scholarship has generally interpreted the 1607
colony of Jamestown Virginia as founded on settlement, with plans for the migration of a
substantial English population and the production of agricultural crops. This perspective
is pervasive throughout the work of David Quinn, Nicholas Canny, Edmund Morgan, and
more recently J.H. Elliott.30 This view of Virginia as a colony based on acquiring and
settling land has fallen from favour among many scholars. Alison Games argues that the
settlement model of Jamestown results from scholars’ projecting Virginia’s eventual
success based on Native removal and intensive agriculture onto the colony’s initial
28 “The first Virginia Charter of April 10, 1606,” in David B. Quinn, Alison M. Quinn, and Susan Hillier. New American World: A Documentary History of North America to 1612: Volume 5: The Extension of Settlement in Florida, Virginia, and the Spanish Southwest (New York: Arno Press, 1979), 191-192, (Hereinafter NAW Volume 5).
29 Ibid., 192. 30 Nicholas P. Canny, Kingdom and Colony (Baltimore: The Johns Hopkins University Press, 1988);
Canny, Making Ireland British: 1580-1650, Nicholas P. Canny, The Elizabethan Conquest of Ireland: A Pattern Established 1565-1576 (New York: Harper &Row, 1976); J.H. Elliott, Empires of the Atlantic World: Britain and Spain in America 1492-1830 (New Haven: Yale University Press, 2006); Edmund S. Morgan, American Slavery American Freedom: The Ordeal of Colonial Virginia (New York: W.W. Norton & Company, 1975); David B. Quinn, The Elizabethans and the Irish (Ithica: Cornell University Press, 1966).
foundation.31 Many scholars now view the trade model of England’s eastern ventures
including the Levant and East India Companies as the prototype for early Virginia.32
In Pursuits of Happiness, Jack Greene disputes the use of a pure settlement model
in early Virginia, and maintains that failing a conquest of local Natives on the Spanish
and Irish models, the London Virginia Company attempted to operate Jamestown on the
model of the eastern trade posts used by the Levant, East India, and Muscovy
Companies.33 In Greene’s work the eastern trade model is secondary to the London
Company’s desire to emulate Spain’s American conquests and attempts to subdue
Natives to agricultural labourers on the Irish model.34 Greene’s work represents an
increased emphasis on the commercial nature of Virginia without a complete
abandonment of the settlement model in early Virginia.35 Recent scholarship with an
increased Mediterranean focus builds on Greene’s argument that early Virginia used a
trade model based on eastern trade precedents.
Linda Colley’s Captives: Britain, Empire and the World, stresses the importance
of the Mediterranean to England’s overseas expansion.36 Colley shows that the
Mediterranean was the center of England’s overseas expansion, and represented the most
31 Games The Web of Empire: English Cosmopolitans in an Age of Expansion 1560-1660 (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2008), 127.
32 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 37; Games, The Web of Empire, 118-120; Joyce Chaplin, “The British Atlantic.” in Nicholas Canny and Philip Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2011) 220-21; Klooster, “The Northern European Atlantic World,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 167-8; Stern “British Asia and British Atlantic: Comparisons and Connections,” 695; Gerald MacLean and Nabil Matar, Britan and the Islamic World, 1558-1713 (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2011), 14-16.
33 Jack P. Greene, Pursuits of Happiness: The Social Development of Early Modern British Colonies and the Formation of American Culture (Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press, 1988) 8-9.
34 Ibid., 8-9. 35 Ibid., Edmund Morgan uses a similarly economic interpretation of early Virginia but maintains a pure
settlement view of the colony. See, Morgan, American Slavery American Freedom, 77. 36 Linda Colley, Captives: Britain, Empire, and the World, 1600-1850 (New York: Anchor Books, 2004).
profitable market for England from 1600 to 1660.37 Colley argues that due to its
economic importance the Mediterranean was key in English policy concerns during the
late sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries.38 In Karen Kupperman’s The Jamestown
Project, the English Mediterranean trade becomes essential to the English colony of
Jamestown. Kupperman emphasizes that English trade ventures preceded the colony of
Virginia with the Levant and East India Companies.39 Kupperman argues that American
colonization was a direct extension of these eastern trade ventures providing the Virginia
Company with its original model for operation, the trading station.40 Alison Games’s The
Web of Empire, builds on this work by focusing on the connections between English
expansion in the Mediterranean and America. Games demonstrates that there was a forty
percent investor overlap between the London Virginia Company and the eastern trading
companies, and goes on to argue that the Virginia Company directly adopted the eastern
ventures’ tactics and organization.41 This Mediterranean trade interpretation has gained
the support of numerous scholars including Joyce Chaplin, Wim Klooster, and Philip
Stern.42 This revisionist interpretation, stressing the importance of the Mediterranean
trade model’s influence, conflicts with the view of Nicholas Canny, David Quinn, and
Edmund Morgan who consider Virginia to be a colony based on settlement.43
37 Ibid., 69, 25. 38 Ibid., 44, 73-83. 39 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 37. 40 Ibid., 184, 26. 41 Games, The Web of Empire, 83,118. 42 Chaplin, “The British Atlantic.” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic
World; Klooster, “The Northern European Atlantic World,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World; Stern “British Asia and British Atlantic: Comparisons and Connections;” MacLean and Matar, Britan and the Islamic World, 1558-1713. Canny, Kingdom and Colony, Canny, Making Ireland British: 1580-1650; Canny, The Elizabethan Conquest of Ireland; J.H. Elliott, Empires of the Atlantic World; Morgan, American Slavery American Freedom; Quinn, The Elizabethans and the Irish.
This revisionist interpretation of early Virginia sees large-scale migration and
agriculture as later developments, with the early colony primarily seeking valuable trade
goods. While this revisionist view of early Virginia focuses on trade rather than
settlement, there is a substantial overlap between the two models including the English
search for mineral wealth and a Northwest Passage to East Asia.44 This view differs from
Greene’s by considering trade and eastern experiences as the primary motivation behind
English colonization rather than a supporting component. Both Games and Kupperman
see trade as the primary English motive from the beginning, and Kupperman largely
discounts the English desire to conquer the local Native Americans, arguing that such a
conflict would irreversibly damage the colony’s original trade station function.45
With the reinterpretation of Jamestown as a trade colony and the new prominence
of England’s eastern trade ventures in the historiography, it is strange that the recent
scholarship has so thoroughly neglected the western trade ventures of England in North
America prior to 1607. There was a renewal of English voyages to North America in the
early seventeenth century, with six recorded voyages between 1602 and 1606, harvesting
sassafras, trading for furs, searching for fishing bases, and seeking the lost colonists of
Roanoke. These voyages conformed to the larger trend of English commercial expansion,
and represented the western component of this same expansion searching for new
products for Mediterranean markets.46
44 Games, The Web of Empire, 118-121; Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 9-10; Quinn, Explorers and Colonies,154-156.
45 Games, The Web of Empire, 118; Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 26, 212-14. 46 Klooster, “The Northern European Atlantic World,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of
The Atlantic World, 167.
While these North America trade voyages were part of England’s larger
commercial expansion, they were the result of alternative trade experiences largely
separate from those developed in the Mediterranean. England’s early seventeenth-century
North American trade voyages were the culmination of two separate American trade
traditions: England’s privateer activities in the West Indies, and the Newfoundland
fishing voyages. Privateer voyages to the West Indies routinely combined friendly trade
with native Caribs and Arawaks, transnational privateers, and Spanish settlers with more
violent attacks on Spanish shipping.47 The experience gained through English
privateering against the Spanish Americas also provided the southern trade voyages with
their navigational expertise and much of their personnel.48 The northern Virginia trade
voyages of Gosnold, Pring, and Waymouth were direct extensions of the Newfoundland
fishery in their financial backing and search for new seasonal fishing grounds along the
modern New England coast.49 Using information gained through contact with Basque,
Breton, and Norman fishermen, England emulated France in pursing North American
trade as early as 1580 with the voyage of the Squirrel to the Penobscot River.50 The
Virginian voyages of 1602-5 comprised a renewal of this trade, and were dependant on
the navigational route and knowledge of the Newfoundland fishery.51
47 Quinn, Explorers and Colonies, 348; Kenneth R. Andrews, Elizabethan Privateering; English Privateering During the Spanish War, 1585-1603 (Cambridge: University Press, 1964), 183. Quinn and Andrews discusses the existence of the French, English, and Dutch Privateer mart at Guanahibes, Hispaniola in 1604.
48 David B. Quinn and Alison M. Quinn, The English New England Voyages, 1602-1608 (London: Hakluyt Society, 1983), 1-2, (Hereinafter: ENEV)
49 Quinn sees the Gosnold Voyage as roughly based on the previous venture of Sir Humphrey Gilbert in 1578-83. Pring and Waymouth were funded by West Country fishing interests, see, Quinn, North America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements, 391, ENEV, 212, 248.
50 Quinn, North America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements, 387. 51 ENEV, 1-2.
David Beers Quinn discusses the English trade voyages to North America
between 1602 and 1605 in numerous works, but he does not consider these voyages to be
a major influence on Jamestown.52 Quinn sees Jamestown as a colony based on the
precedents of the Roanoke colonies and ultimately designed for large-scale English
settlement with the intent of producing Mediterranean agricultural products.53 The early
seventeenth-century English trade voyages did not involve agriculture or settlement, and
so Quinn does not considers these voyages to be an influence on Jamestown. Quinn sees
the trade voyages as the context for renewed English interest in North America, which
led to the creation of the Virginia Companies, and associates the southern trade voyages
of Mace and Gilbert with the eventual choice of the Chesapeake Bay.54 Quinn considers
the trade voyages to be an influence on the creation of the London and Plymouth Virginia
Companies in 1606, but not on events in Jamestown itself. Neither Quinn nor any other
scholar has studied the influences of the seasonal trade voyages between 1602 and 1605
on the development of Jamestown.
In North America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements, Quinn addresses
both Sagadahoc and Jamestown, but does not attempt a comparative analysis of the
colonies, seeing them as divided in objectives and influences.55 Since the work of Quinn,
the scholarship on England’s colonization has reduced the northern Virginia colony of
Sagadahoc to a footnote, given little more than passing mention.56 Few historians have
52 Quinn, North America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements, 443-445. 53 Ibid., 485. 54 Quinn, England and the Discovery of America, 428. 55 Quinn, North America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements, 443-445; Quinn, England and the
Discovery of America, 483-5, 443-445.
heeded Quinn’s work on English North American activity in the era leading up to
colonization in 1606-7, and most relegate the English trade voyages and the colony of
Sagadahoc to minor incidents. The recent scholarship has overlooked the connections
between the 1602-1605 English trade voyages, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc despite the
insight these links can provide on the foundations of English North American
colonization.57
` Scholars stressing the importance of England’s commercial involvement in the
Mediterranean consider England’s competition with Spain to be the driving force behind
this economic expansion. In “The Commercial Ideology of Colonization in Jacobean
England,” Andrew Fitzmaurice argues that the work of Giovanni Botero, a former
Milanese Jesuit writing in support of a universal Spanish monarchy, was a key influence
on the commercial nature of English expansion at the turn of the seventeenth century.
Fitzmaurice claims that Englishmen seeking to challenge Spain’s dominance in the
context of the 1604 peace used Botero’s work on commerce.58
Fitzmaurice elevates Spanish influence to a central place in explaining English
expansion in both the Mediterranean and North America. Similarly, Karen Kupperman
sees England’s commercial expansion in the Mediterranean, West Africa, and India as a
direct imitation of the Spanish empire, which included Portugal at this time.59 Kupperman
56 Kupperman considers the Sagadahoc colony, French Port Royal, and the 1602-1605 trade voyages briefly within a survey of English North American activity, Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 183-194. Alison Games mentions the Sagadahoc colony, but does not discuss the 1602-5 trade voyages see, Games, The Web of Empire, 117-120.
57 Karen Kupperman and Alison Games briefly mention Sagadahoc, but most scholars have simply omitted both Sagadahoc and the 1602-1606 English trade voyages. See, Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 168; Games, The Web of Empire, 117-8.
58 Andrew Fitzmaurice, “The Commercial Ideology of Colonization in Jacobean England: Robert Johnson, Giovanni Botero, and the Pursuit of Greatness,” William and Mary Quarterly 64, 4 (2007), 801.
59 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 3.
stresses that the Iberians preceded the English in these trade markets, and argues that the
English consciously used Iberian knowledge to contest their dominance.60 This
interpretation allows for a powerful Spanish influence on England’s American expansion
through a trade model. The recent scholarship on English expansion establishes the
importance of the Mediterranean trade and Spanish influences on English colonization in
the early seventeenth century. Yet, the recent scholarship has not effectively incorporated
England’s longstanding connections and competition with France in the late sixteenth and
early seventeenth centuries culminating in simultaneous efforts at colonization.61
At the turn of the seventeenth century, England’s North American trade voyages
overlapped with contemporary French trade voyages. In contrast to the scholarship on
England’s North American colonization, the French scholarship has long accepted
seasonal trade voyages as a central precursor to colonization in the early seventeenth
century. Marcel Trudel’s Histoire De La Nouvelle-France and H.P. Biggar’s The Early
Trading Companies of New France remain important works on the seasonal fur trade
voyages to New France and the beginnings of French colonization.62 Trudel and Biggar
discuss the French trade voyages and the 1604 Acadian colony of Port Royal, but do not
feel it is necessary to establish the continuities between the trade voyages and trade
colonies of the early seventeenth century.63 While there is a moderate amount of
60 Ibid., 3,31,34. Karen Kupperman’s recent work provides the most extensive use of French and English connections to discuss Jamestown and early seventeenth-century English colonization. Kupperman tends to incorporate these connections in a contextual way rather than through comparative analysis. See, Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 79-82, 187, 190.
62 Trudel, Histoire De La Nouvelle-France, Volume II; Marcel Trudel, The Beginnings of New France, 1524-1663 (Toronto: McClelland and Stewart, 1973); Biggar, The Early Trading Companies of New France.
63 Biggar, The Early Trading Companies of New France, 51-64; Trudel, The Beginnings of New France, 54-92.
comparative consideration in both Trudel and Biggar’s works, including mentions of
French competition with the English and Dutch, it remains peripheral.64
Conrad Heidenreich and Janet Ritch’s Samuel de Champlain before 1604 adds to
Trudel and Biggar’s work with contextual essays discussing the French trade voyages to
New France in 1603 and France’s competition with England.65 Yet, Heidenreich and
Ritch do not discuss the French colony of Port Royal or the English colonies of
Jamestown and Sagadahoc. Even within the scholarship on French colonization there is
fragmentation between the early seventeenth-century trade voyages, Port Royal, and
Quebec. There is a shortage of comparative studies on the French Atlantic in general.
James Pritchard’s In Search of Empire, is the one of the only major macro studies on the
French Atlantic in recent years.66 The scholarship on French colonization remains
primarily regional in focus, with a disconnect between these regions.
Many historians of French colonization including James Axtell, W.J. Eccles, and
Ian Steele give limited attention to first colony of Port Royal under Sieur de Mons from
1604-1607, seeing it as little more than a prelude to the colony of Quebec, which they
associate with the beginning of Canada.67 This interpretation overlooks the seventeenth-
century importance of the Acadian colony as a training ground where Samuel de
Champlain, de Mons, and other colonists formulated the tactics used in Quebec. Naomi
64 Biggar, The Early Trading Companies of New France ,24, 38-9, 45, 63; Trudel, Histoire De La Nouvelle-France, Vol. II, 2, 19-21, 43, 58.
65 Conrad Heidenreich and Janet Ritch, Samuel de Champlain before 1604: Des Sauvages and Other Documents Related to the Period (Toronto: McGill-Queen’s University Press, 2010), 3-82 (Hereinafter DSOD).
66 James Pritchard, in Search of Empire: The French in North America (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2004).
67 W.J. Eccles, The French in North America 1500-1783 (East Lansing: Michigan State University Press, 1998), 15-6; James Axtell, The Invasion Within: The Contest of Cultures in Colonial North America (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1986), 34-5; Ian Kenneth Steele, Warpaths: Invasions of North America (New York: Oxford University Press, 1994), 61-63.
Griffiths’ From Migrant to Acadian discusses the founding of Port Royal. Griffith
provides a concise narrative of the events in the early colony, but is more interested in
later developments in Acadia and uses Port Royal as a means of establishing a
background for these events.68 Griffith and most scholars of early Acadia give limited
attention to the French trade and exploration voyages prior to 1604 and the contemporary
English voyages competing with the French.69 John Reid helps to explain the regional
focus of many studies on Acadia and Port Royal in his discussion of the importance of
the colony’s 400th anniversaries in 2004.70 The regional importance of Port Royal as the
foundation of Acadia and the early colony’s significance within the contested heritage of
Acadia and modern Nova Scotia has led to a scholarly trend towards an Acadia specific
scope. Reid has also produced a comparative treatment of French and English
colonization in the context of a seventeenth-century regional history of Maine and
Acadia.71 Reid provides a short discussion of the transition to colonies in Maine and
Acadia, which highlights the importance of commercial exploitation in producing the
colonies of Port Royal and Sagadahoc.72
Quinn’s work on the North American activity of the English and French between
1580 and 1607 is the best example of a comparative framework in the scholarship on
early seventeenth-century French and English colonization. Quinn sees French and
68 Griffith discusses The colonization effort of Port Royal in a brief 22 page introduction which provides a narrative of the colony from 1604 to 1613. See, Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 3-24.
69 Griffiths mentions colonial competition with England, and trade precedents, but they are extremely brief references. Other scholars of the era such as Elizabeth Jones similarly limit English competition and previous trade voyage experiences to very brief references. See, Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 3-4; Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 6, 10-12.
70 John Reid and Emerson Baker. Essays on Northeastern North America, Seventeenth and Eighteenth Centuries (Toronto: University of Toronto Press, 2008), 221-229.
71 John Reid, “Political Definitions: Creating Maine and Acadia,” in Emerson W. Baker ed., American Beginnings: Exploration, Culture, and Cartography in the Land of Norumbega (Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 1994), 173-176.
72 Ibid.
English colonization as parallel developments springing from a shared North American
heritage transcending national divides, and resulting from competition over a shared
sphere of trade influence.73 In North America from Earliest Discovery to First
Settlements, Quinn addresses Port Royal and Sagadahoc in an interwoven discussion
including elements of trade voyage precedents.74 Quinn sees the two colonies as
geographically linked, contemporary, and competing. Yet, Quinn limits the comparative
analysis between the two colonies, primarily providing a narrative of events in the
colonies.75 Quinn compares Port Royal and Sagadahoc based on their geographic
locations and shared northern trade voyage heritage, but excludes Jamestown entirely as
separate in its precedents, geographic location, and objectives.76 There is room to expand
on the comparative work of Quinn using a specific and detailed comparison of the
connections and similarities between the French colony of Port Royal and the English
colonies of Jamestown and Sagadahoc.
Many scholars see hostility and violence as representative of the larger
seventeenth-century trajectory of English-Native relations in North American.77 A
substantial proportion of studies on seventeenth-century English North American
colonization accept the basic premises of English hostility towards Native Americans,
and the violent expulsion of Native American groups to clear land for English
73 David B. Quinn, England and the Discovery of America, 1481-1620, From the Bristol Voyages of the Fifteenth Century to the Pilgrim Settlement at Plymouth: the Exploration, Exploitation, and Trial-and-Error Colonization of North America by the English (New York: Knopf, 1974), 314-336.
74 David B. Quinn, North America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements: The Norse Voyages to 1612 (New York: Harper & Row, 1977), 391.
75 Ibid. 76 Ibid., 443-5; Quinn, England and the Discovery of America, 483-5.
John Reid, “Political definitions: creating Maine and Acadia,” in Baker ed., American Beginnings, 176; Chaplin, “The British Atlantic,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 223-4; Benjamin, The Atlantic World, 273-4, 309; Daniel K. Richter, Facing East from Indian Country: A Native History of Early America (Cambridge: Harvard University Press, 2001), 7-8.
settlement.78 These scholars argue that English colonists’ agricultural focus led to conflict
with Natives over land, and that the English possessed a militant Protestant ideology
which generated xenophobia against Natives, their culture, and religion.79 Jamestown’s
conflict with the Powhatans reflected this larger trend, and many scholars such as Alison
Games see Jamestown as creating a new colonization model based on agriculture and the
violent removal of Native Americans.80
In contrast, most scholars of French colonization argue that seventeenth-century
French relations with Native Americans in North American were based on cooperative
trade alliances. These scholars see French colonization as lacking the English’s hostility
and violence towards Native groups.81 The cooperative Native relations established by
the French in the seventeenth century are generally attributed to the small number of
French colonists, the French reliance on Native fur trade partners, and the French’s
relative acceptance of Native culture.82 Scholars’ division of English and French Native
78 Francis Parkman, The Jesuits in North America in the Seventeenth Century. (Boston: Little, Brown & Company, 1882), 44; Greene, Pursuits of Happiness, 12-14. Theda Perdue and Michael D. Green. The Columbia Guide to American Indians of the Southeast. (New York: Columbia University Press, 2005), 54; Chaplin, “The British Atlantic,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 223-4; Jean-Frédéric Shaub, “Violence in the Atlantic: Sixteenth and Seventeenth Centuries,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 118.
79 Chaplin, “The British Atlantic,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 224.
80 Looking at the American Southeast Perdue and Green sees Virginia as reflecting the larger trend of English-Native relations rather than establishing it. Alison Games explicitly argues that Jamestown represents a break with previous English colonization efforts and marked the creation of a new agriculture based colonization model. See, Perdue and Green, The Columbia Guide to American Indians of the Southeast, 54; Games, The Web of Empire, 120, 142-3.
81 John Reid discusses the existence this general trend with the French establishing cooperative Native relations and the English having some difficulty doing the same in the regions of Acadia and Maine during the seventeenth century, but sees is as a pattern rather than a rule. Reid, “Political definitions : creating Maine and Acadia,” in Baker ed., American Beginnings, 176.
relations dates back to the nineteenth-century historian Francis Parkman.83 Conrad
Heidenreich and Janet Ritch consider the French style of peaceful colonization utilized by
Samuel de Champlain in the early seventeenth century as beyond the English and Dutch
who lacked the French’s cultural flexibility.84 Similarly Gordon Sayre directly contrasts
French cooperative Native relations with English coercive Native relations.85 Alfred Cave
also cites the English reliance on violence and their inability to emulate French
understanding and respect for Native customs.86 To Heidenreich, Ritch, Sayre, and Cave
the poor relations between the English and Natives and cooperative relations between the
French and Natives are the result of nebulous national characteristics which are so well
established in the scholarship that these scholars do not feel a need to explain the
divide.87
The similarities and connections between France and England’s colonization
efforts in the early seventeenth century cast doubts on the origins of these larger
seventeenth-century trends in Native relations. Rather than accepting Port Royal,
82 Gilles Paquet and Jean-Pierre Wallot “Nouvelle-France/Quebec/Canada : A World of Limited Identities” in Nicholas P. Canny and Anthony Pagden eds., Colonial Identity in the Atlantic World, 1500-1800 (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1987), 98; Silvia Marzagalli, “The French Atlantic World in the Seventeenth and Eighteenth Centuries,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 240; Perdue and Green, The Columbia Guide to American Indians of the Southeast, 63; Kevin Terraciano, “Voices from the Other side: Native Perspectives from New Spain, Peru, and North America,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 267; Klooster, “The Northern European Atlantic World,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 177; Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 39.
83 Francis Parkman, The Jesuits in North America in the Seventeenth Century, 44. 84 DSOD, XVII-XIX. 85 Gordon Sayre, Les "Sauvages americains": representations of Native Americans in narratives of colonial
Virginia and New France (PhD diss. State University of New York at Buffalo, 1993), 57-8; Gordon Sayre, : Representations of Native Americans in French and English Colonial Literature (Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press, 1997), 13.
86 Cave, “Why Was the Sagadahoc Colony Abandoned?” 639. 87 A notable exception to this view of early seventeenth-century French policy within the scholarship is
Naomi Griffiths who is more realistic in her estimation of Port Royal’s Native relations, and acknowledges that the French had no respect for Native’s political rights and saw their culture as inferior, Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 8.
Jamestown, and Sagadahoc as part of these larger English and French trends of Native
relations, this study will consider the factors leading to the development of Native
relations within these three colonies. In addition to considering the development of
colonist-Native relations in these three colonies, this study will demonstrate the
importance of Native American agency through a comparative perspective. Comparative
ethnohistory is on the rise: scholars such as Amy Bushnell are using comparative
ethnohistory to study the formation of the Spanish American colonies’ relations with the
Natives of Central and South America, which varied from nomadic tribes to settled
empires.88 Most works of comparative ethnohistory are macro studies such as Daniel
Richter’s Facing East from Indian Country and Colin Calloway's New World for All,
with vast geographic and temporal scopes.89 The scope of these studies creates a degree
of uniformity among diverse Native American groups across space and time that is not
necessarily accurate. This is especially true at the turn of the seventeenth century when
the degree of European disruption was still localized and somewhat limited in North
America.
Chapter Two discusses the influence of early seventeenth-century English trade
voyages on the trade colonies of Jamestown and Sagadahoc. While the leaders of the
London and Plymouth Virginia Companies were closely connected to English
commercial expansion in the Mediterranean they came to rely on the information
provided by North American trade voyage accounts and the leadership of trade voyage
veterans in the colonies of Jamestown and Sagadahoc. The promotional literature
88 Amy T. Bushnell, “Indigenous America and the Limits of the Atlantic World,” in Jack P. Greene and Philip D. Morgan eds., Atlantic History: A Critical Appraisal, (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2009).
89 Richter, Facing East from Indian Country; Colin G. Calloway, New Worlds for All: Indians, Europeans, and the Remaking of Early America. (Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 1997).
published in conjunction with the English trade voyages provided evidence of profitable
commodities and the availability of Native trade goods, and this was the stimulus behind
the dual Virginia Companies’ transfer of the trade station from the Mediterranean to
North America. Trade voyage information was central in forming the tactics, perceptions,
and objectives of the Plymouth and London Virginian Companies and trade voyage
veterans had a substantial direct influence on developments in Jamestown and
Sagadahoc. The scholarship has understudied and underemphasized England’s North
American trade activity and its influence on shaping England’s early seventeenth-century
expansion and colonization efforts.
Chapter Three explores France and England’s competition for North America
trade and their simultaneous efforts to establish trade colonies. France and England’s
competing claims to the northeastern coast of North America stimulated competing
colonization efforts. These colonies functioned as trade stations and were intended to
claim and protect territory for their prospective monarchs. The French transferred trade
voyage information and personnel to the colony of Port Royal in Acadia. Port Royal,
Jamestown, and Sagadahoc possessed similar economic objectives, perceptions of the
North American climate, and views of Native Americans as a result of their shared
sixteenth-century heritage and their seventeenth-century competition through trade
voyages. Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc were far more interconnected than the
scholarship has accepted, and these connections are a necessary part of understanding the
development of French and English North American colonization. After establishing the
connections between the French and English colonization efforts in Port Royal,
Jamestown, and Sagadahoc, Chapter Three will address the diversity and divisions within
France and England during the early seventeenth century to demonstrate the limitations
of these groups’ unity.
Scholars of sixteenth and seventeenth-century colonization commonly use the
terms French and English without acknowledging the limitations of these categories. In
the early seventeenth century France and England were composite monarchies with
substantial cultural, linguistic, and religious diversity. English and French are umbrella
terms this thesis will use to identify loyalty to common monarchs and involvement in
these monarchs’ colonization efforts rather than cohesive national identities. The
identifiers French and English co-existed with transnational associations and with self-
identification associated with individuals’ region or city of origin. Regional loyalties
shaped the internal struggles over the granting of monopolies to de Mons’ trade company
in France and the London and Plymouth Companies in England. The modern nationalistic
framework has caused scholars to emphasize the divisions between the French and
English, but these political associations coexisted uneasily with regional competition and
transnational connections which were all important in forming the early seventeenth-
century colonization efforts in North America.
Chapter Four demonstrates that Port Royal and Sagadahoc developed similar
Native relations which included cooperation, trade, hostility, and conflict with Native
groups in northern Virginia and Acadia. The hostility and violence that characterized
English-Native relations in Jamestown represented a break with the patterns of England’s
North American trade voyages and the colony of Sagadahoc. The French and English
colonists in these three colonies lacked clear differences in their formative experiences or
objectives, and Native relations cannot be satisfactorily explained by French and English
culture and formative experiences alone. The impact of Native culture and actions must
be considered as well.
Through a comparative perspective, Chapter Four examines Native American
agency. The culture, formative experiences, and social and political structures of the
agricultural Powhatans and Armouchiquois differed greatly from the hunter-gather
Mi’kmaq, Maliseet, and Eastern Abenaki. The dense populations, hierarchical social
structures, and limited trade experiences of the Powhatans and Armouchiquois
contributed to their reoccurring conflicts with the English in Jamestown and the French in
Port Royal. On the other hand the Mi’kmaq, Maliseet, and Eastern Abenaki had dispersed
settlement patterns and substantial trade experience which contributed to their
establishment of cooperative trade alliances with the French and English colonists in Port
Royal and Sagadahoc. Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc were far more similar in
their objectives, tactics, and experiences, than the diverse Native groups they
encountered. The similarities between the French and English colonies highlight the
importance of Native characteristics and agency in forming the early relations between
Europeans and Native Americans.
Rather than adopting the scholarship’s current use of macro-trends based on the
larger trajectories of French and English colonization in the sixteenth and seventeenth
centuries, this study stresses the importance of contingency in shaping the development
of France and England’s North American colonies. Expansive frameworks are necessary
to facilitate the creation of a coherent Atlantic discipline spanning four continents and
three hundred years, but these frameworks can also cause scholars to distort historic
events to fit these larger patterns. This study does not assume that the French and English
imperial rivalry in North America, the agricultural focus of English colonies and the fur
trade focus of French colonies, or the varied Native relations of French and English
colonies were inevitable or fully intentional developments. The French, English,
Powhatans, Mi’kmaq, Eastern Abenaki, Armouchiquois, and Maliseet all possessed
military experience and served as warriors fighting to protect or claim territory. Yet,
these same individuals had extensive trade experience and were motivated by their trade
objectives; creating complicated situations in which colonists and Natives were driven by
their dual natures as warriors and traders. The interconnected nature of French and
English North American voyages continued into their early seventeenth-century colonial
competition, and this newly prominent national competition coexisted with regional
divisions and transnational connections. In demonstrating the nuances of French, English,
and Native relations this study complicates the use of both seventeenth-century and
modern national frameworks, and helps to clarify the limits of French, English and
Native American unity while highlighting the numerous connections among these groups.
CHAPTER 2: THE WESTERN TRADE: THE ENGLISH TRADE VOYAGES TO NORTH AMERICA AND THE FOUNDATIONS OF THE JAMESTOWN AND
SAGADAHOC COLONIES 1602-1609
The English revived their interest in the North American mainland in the early
seventeenth century, conducting six recorded voyages between 1602 and 1606. The early
seventeenth-century English trade voyages provided a wealth of contemporary
information on the products, geography, climate, and Natives of North America, to be
utilized by the Virginia Companies while formulating their plans for colonization in
1606-7. The promotional pamphlets of Brereton in 1603 and Rosier in 1605, published in
support of the English trade voyages, helped to reinvigorate English colonization by
promising a variety of profitable commodities in a fertile and pleasant North America,
enticing merchant interests in London and Plymouth to invest in colonization. Trade
voyage veterans such as Bartholomew Gosnold and Martin Pring campaigned for
colonization in London and the West Country prior to the creation of the London and
Plymouth Companies in 1606.
With the formation of the dual Virginia Companies in 1606, many of those
involved in the previous seasonal trade voyages to North America became active
members in both the London and Plymouth colonies. The principal investors in the dual
Virginia Companies were experienced in the Mediterranean and Eastern trades, but they
came to rely on American trade voyage veterans to lead their colonization efforts. The
English experience gained in seasonal trade voyages was an immediate and powerful
influence responsible for the formation and character of the Virginia Companies. The
London and Plymouth Companies formulated their tactics, objectives, and general
perceptions based on the lessons and information of these North American trade voyages.
The 1602 trade voyage to northern Virginia led by Bartholomew Gosnold involved three
future Jamestown council members who would directly transfer their trade voyage
experiences to the English colonization effort of 1606-7.
*
English North American Trade Voyages and the Establishment of Trade Colonies
Following the return of the Gosnold voyage to northern Virginia in 1602, Richard
Hakluyt the younger, Edward Hayes, and John Brereton one of the men on the voyage
attempted to reinvigorate English North American colonization by publishing a
promotional pamphlet.90 Walter Raleigh still held his North American monopoly at this
time, and there was a conflict over the breaking of Raleigh’s monopoly by the Gosnold
voyage.91 The two groups came to an agreement, and the 1602 promotional pamphlet
included a short note on the 1602 Mace voyage to southern Virginia under Raleigh’s
sponsorship.92
While it would be four years until the formation of the London and Plymouth
Virginia Companies, these two voyages to Virginia marked the revitalization of
England’s North American activity, and the 1602 promotional pamphlet helped to
reinvigorate English interest in North American ventures culminating in colonization in
1606-7. In 1603 there were three recorded voyages to Virginia, two with their roots in the
1602 Gosnold voyage. The Pring voyage to northern Virginia was a direct follow up to
90 The 1602 pamphlet used the term northern Virginia to describe the coast of modern New England and southern Virginia referred to the coast from Florida to the Chesapeake Bay, ENEV, 36-7.
91 Walter Ralegh, “Sir Walter Ralegh to Sir Robert Cecil, 21 August 1602,” in ENEV, 205-7. 92 Ibid.
Gosnold’s voyage funded by Bristol interests with Raleigh’s consent.93 Bartholomew
Gilbert, co-leader of the 1602 Gosnold voyage, and Samuel Mace conducted separate
voyages to southern Virginia in 1603 under the direct sponsorship of Walter Raleigh.94
These trade voyages in 1603 built on the effort began in 1602 and continued to generate
renewed English interest in North America.
The English North American trade voyages in 1602 and 1603 had extensive
connections with the Plymouth and London Virginia Companies formed in 1606. Pring
would become a member of the Plymouth Virginia Company responsible for exploring
the coast of northern Virginia in 1606.95 Many historians have recognized the central role
Bartholomew Gosnold played in promoting North American colonization in the years
leading up to the creation of the London Virginia Company.96 John Smith acknowledged
Gosnold as a central supporter of colonization in London before the creation of the
Virginia Companies in 1606.97 Gosnold became a recruiter for the London Virginia
Company and a member of the Jamestown Council during the early months of the
Jamestown Colony.98 Gabriel Archer, the first secretary of Jamestown, and John Martin,
one of Jamestown’s original council members, were also members of Gosnold’s 1602
93 Pring sought to continue the discoveries of Gosnold in northern Virginia, exploit the local fur trade, and gather sassafras with the help of Gosnold’s pilot Robert Salterne, “Martin Pring’s Voyage to ‘North Virginia’ in 1603,” in ENEV, 229.
94 Thomas Canner, “Thomas Canner’s Account of Bartholomew Gilbert’s Voyage in search of Chesapeake Bay,” in NAW Vol. 5,163.
95 “A briefe relation of the discovery and plantation of New-England,” in David B. Quinn, Alison M. Quinn, and Susan Hillier. New American World A Documentary History of North America to 1612 Volume 3: English Plans for North America. The Roanoke Voyages. New England Ventures (New York: Arno Press, 1979), 420, (Hereinafter NAW Volume 3).
96 James Horn, A Land As God Made It: Jamestown and the Birth of America (New York: Basic Books, 2005) 34-5; Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 188-190.
97 John Smith, “The Proceedings of the English Colony in Virginia, 1607-1612,” in NAW Vol. 5, 310. 98 Ibid.; Edward Maria Wingfield, “Edward Maria Wingfield’s replies to the charges made against him in
Virginia, May 1607- May 1608,” in NAW Vol. 5, 277; George Percy, “A Discourse of the Plantation of the Southern Colonie in Virginia, 20 December – 20 September 1607,” in NAW Vol. 5, 273.
voyage.99 The editor of Brereton’s 1602 account, Richard Hakluyt the younger, became a
member of the London Virginia Company where he utilized his knowledge of North
American voyages to help formulate the Company’s tactics.100 Edward Hayes, another
contributor to the 1602 promotional pamphlet, would also be active in the events
culminating in the creation of the Virginia Companies in 1606, submitting a plan for a
publicly funded colony to the Earl of Salisbury.101 While this overlap in personnel would
influence the formation and objectives of the Virginia Companies, it would be several
years before the Companies’ creation in 1606. The 1604 English-Spanish peace and
colonial competition with France were also primary catalysts for the formation of the
London and Plymouth Virginia Companies that will be discussed in Chapter Three. The
formation of the dual Virginia Companies required additional catalysts including the
1605 trade voyage of George Waymouth.
The reinvigorated English trade in North America continued in 1605 with the
publication of a second promotional pamphlet based on the discoveries of George
Waymouth in Virginia.102 The 1605 voyage was funded by a combination of Catholic
court interests considering colonization and West Country merchants seeking new fishing
grounds in northern Virginia.103 Waymouth’s expedition used the information and tactics
of the previous 1602-3 voyages, but had no overlap in backers or personnel. The
99 Gabriel Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage to the North Part of Virginia,” in ENEV, 130. For Archer’s role as Secretary in Jamestown. See, Gabriel Archer, “The Description of the now discovered River and Country of Virginia; with the Likelyhood of ensuing ritches, by Englands ayd and industry, May 21-June 21 1607,” in NAW Vol.5, 274-6. Captain John Martin is not mentioned in the two accounts of the 1602 voyage, but Alexander Brown mentions Martins presence during the voyage. See, Alexander Brown, The First Republic in America (Boston: Houghton, Mifflin and Co, 1898), 33.
100 “The first Virginia Charter of April 10, 1606,” in NAW Vol. 5, 192. 101 “Edward and Thomas Hayes to the Earl of Salsibury, March 25-April 9 1606,” in NAW Vol.5, 167;
“Reasons to move the High Court of Parlament to raise a stocke for the maintaining of a Collonie in Virginia, 1606,” in NAW Vol.5, 168-170.
102 James Rosier, “A Trve Relation,” in ENEV, 251. 103 ENEV, 56.
Waymouth voyage was central in promoting English colonization in North American,
and London’s renewed interest in Virginia following the Waymouth voyage is
demonstrated by the publication of the play “Eastward Hoe,” featuring a voyage to
Virginia in 1605.104 The 1605 promotional tract of Rosier specifically targeted London
investors for future investment in colonization by using the more general term Virginia
rather than North Virginia, and stressed the involvement of Thames-side sailors who
could confirm the details of Rosier’s account.105
There were concrete connections between the Waymouth venture and the
formation of the Plymouth Virginia Company. In his 1658 memoirs, Sir Ferdinando
Gorges specifically cited Waymouth’s 1605 arrival in Plymouth with five Native captives
as the beginning of his interest in North American colonization.106 These Eastern
Abenaki captives provided information on the Virginian coast, and were aboard the 1606
Challons, 1606 Hanham-Pring, and 1607 Popham-Gilbert voyages to northern Virginia as
part of the Plymouth Company colonization effort.107 These tangible connections
demonstrate the importance of the early seventeenth-century English trade voyages in
initiating and shaping English colonization in 1606-7.
The formation of the dual Virginia Companies in 1606 represented a new interest
in combining the existing North American trade with colonization. The 1606 royal
charter creating the First and Second Companies focused on establishing some form of
104 Quinn, North America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements, 435. 105 Rosier, “A Trve Relation,” in ENEV, 251, 253. 106 Ferdinando Gorges, A briefe narration of the original undertaking of the advancement of plantations
into the parts of America, in ENEV, 340. 107 “Deposition of Nicholas Hind, master of the Richard in the High Court of Admiralty, 16 February
1607,” in ENEV, 357; Robert Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage unto New-England’ Began from the Lizard, ye first of June 1607,” in ENEV, 426.
permanent English base in Virginia granting, “license to make habitacion, plantacion and
to deduce a Colonie of sondrie of our people into that parte of America commonly called
Virginia.”108 Despite the scholarship’s focus on the London Company and Jamestown,
the Plymouth Company sent out the first colony ship. Captain Henry Challons set sail
from England in August 1606, and took the southern route via the Canary Islands and
West Indies despite his destination being the St. George River in northern Virginia.109
Challons and his crew assumed that their charter from King James would
guarantee their safe passage through the Spanish West Indies, but when the English
encountered a Spanish merchant fleet the Spanish attacked and captured the Richard.110
The capture of the Richard caused a minor diplomatic crisis between England and Spain,
and had a powerful effect on both the London and Plymouth Virginia Companies.
Following the capture of the Richard Charles Cornwallis, the English ambassador in
Spain, wrote the Earl of Salisbury to warn him that the Spanish would not yield their
American monopoly, “which they behold, with noe lesse watchfull eyes, then the
government of their owne wives.”111 The capture of the Richard was a pivotal event
altering English plans for colonization.
The Richard was a ship of only 55 tons with a crew of 29 Englishmen and two
Eastern Abenaki natives of northern Virginia.112 The second Plymouth ship sent out in
1606 under Hanham and Pring was carrying supplies rather than additional colonists, and
based on its ability to reconnoitre the coast of northern Virginia it was likely a smaller
108 “The First Virginia Charter of April 10, 1606,” in NAW Vol.5, 192. 109 “Deposition of Nicholas Hind,” in ENEV, 356-7. 110 Ibid., 358. 111 “Sir Charles Cornwallis to the Earl of Salisbury, 14 May – 24 May 1607,” in NAW Vol.3, 415. 112 “Deposition of Nicholas Hind,” in ENEV, 364.
ship.113 The size of the Plymouth Company’s initial colonization effort indicates that they
were planning a relatively small colony similar to the trade fort constructed but
abandoned by the Gosnold voyage in 1602; rather than the much larger colonies of
Jamestown and Sagadahoc, with over a 100 initial colonists each, sent out after the
Spanish capture of the Richard in 1606.114 Gabriel Archer oversaw the construction of a
trade fort on a small island off the coast of northern Virginia in 1602 intended for perhaps
twenty colonists, but the site was abandoned when it was determined that the available
supplies would not sustain the small English garrison.115
Earlier trade voyages had relied on smaller and cheaper ships of roughly 50 tons
similar to the Richard to conduct their seasonal trade voyages.116 These similarities
highlight the continuities between the trade voyages and the initial plans for English
colonization. The loss of the Richard and the ship’s crew was a heavy blow to the
Plymouth Company.117 It was only after this disaster that the London Company sent out
their colonists in 1607, knowing the danger of Spanish attacks along the southern route to
Virginia and in the Chesapeake itself.
113 “A briefe relation of the discovery and plantation of New-England,” in NAW Vol.3, 420. 114 Smith, “The Proceedings,” in NAW Vol. 5, 312; Quinn, North America from Earliest Discovery to First
Settlements, 407. Roughly half the Sagadahoc colony was evacuated in December of 1607, Samuel Purchase, “North Virginia Voyages,” excerpt from, Pilgrimage, in ENEV, 349.
115 Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV, 127-8, 136-7. 116 The Gosnold voyage of 1602 was conducted using one small bark, the voyages of Mace in 1602 used a
small ship or bark, Pring’s voyage in 1603 utilized a small ship of 50 tons and a bark of 26 tons, and Waymouth’s 1605 voyage had a crew of only 29 men. See, John Brereton, “A BRIEFE AND TRVE RELATION OF THE DISCOVERIE OF THE NORTH PART OF VIRGINIA,” in ENEV, 144; “A briefe Note of the sending another barke this present yeere 1602 by the honorable knight SIR WALTER RALEGH for the searching out of his Colonie in Virginia,” in ENEV, 166; “Martin Pring’s Voyage,” in ENEV, 214-5; Rosier, “A Trve Relation,” in ENEV, 254.
117 Gorges claimed a loss of 5,000 pounds with the capture of the Richard, Gorges,“Sir Ferdinando Gorges to Henry Challons, 13 March 1607,” in NAW Vol.3, 412-3.
The English at Jamestown and Sagadahoc feared assaults from the Spanish in the
south and the French in the north. The London Company warned the Jamestown colonists
of the possibility of a Spanish attack:
That you be not Surprised as the French were in Florida by Melindus and the Spaniard in the same place by the French you shall Do Well to make this Double provision first Erect a Little Sconce at the Mouth of the River that may Lodge Some ten men …they may Come with Speed to Give You Warning.118
The report of the Jamestown council contained this same fear, pleading for a quick
resupply lest the, “deuouringe Spaniard lay his rauenous hands upon theas gold showing
mountaines.”119 The fear of a possible French attack was similarly common in the
Sagadahoc colony. Ferdinando Gorges, one of the leading members of the Plymouth
Company, repeatedly referenced the competition with the French in northern Virginia.
Describing to the early of Salisbury the strategic function of the Sagadahoc colony
against French claims to Virginia in the north, Gorges argued in 1608:
the which hee [King James] shall no sooner quite, but his neighbors will enter into, and therby make themselues greate, as hee might haue do, for at this instant, the French ar in hande with the natiues, to practice vpon vs…120
While the main supply ship of the Sagadahoc colony, the Mary and John, returned to
England in October of 1607 the colony’s smaller ship, the Gifte of God, remained until
December to ward off an illusionary French attack the colonists were all but certain of
based on Native information.121 The capture of the Richard heightened these fears of
118 The London Council, “Instructions given by way of advice, 20 November – 19 December 1606,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 49.
119 Council of Virginia, “Coppie of a letter from Virginia, 22 June 1607,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 79-80.
120 “Sir Ferdinando Gorges to the earl of Salisbury, reporting the return of the Gifte of God, 7 February 1608,” in ENEV, 456-7.
121 “Examination of Lancelot Booker, cooper, 10 June 1608,” in ENEV, 462; “Examination of John Deaman, seaman,10 June 1608,” in ENEV, 463.
Spanish and French attacks and fundamentally shaped the colonies of Jamestown and
Sagadahoc.
In contrast to the previous trade voyages and the initial colonization effort of the
Plymouth Company in 1606, Jamestown and Sagadahoc were larger, more heavily
armed, and were fixated on the danger of foreign attacks. Jamestown was a tightly
controlled colony of military men governed using a strict social hierarchy similar to the
organization of the first colony of Roanoke. 122 The strong military element and the
hostile attitudes in Jamestown and Sagadahoc did not exist in England’s previous North
American trade voyages, or eastern trade ventures which stressed a cosmopolitan
accommodation of local norms and peaceful trading.123 Yet there was a gap of several
decades between the first colony of Roanoke and the Virginia colonies of 1607, and
Richard Hakluyt the younger was the only individual who was directly involved in both
colonization efforts.124
Roanoke’s military model likely influenced Jamestown in minor ways, but
Roanoke cannot easily account for the similarly military organization of the northern
Sagadahoc colony. The personnel of the Sagadahoc colony were military men like those
in Jamestown, with the experienced soldier George Popham in command of the colony,
and Strachey reports that the colony was armed with twelve cannons.125 The large size
and military components of Jamestown and Sagadahoc were a reaction to the capture of
the Richard, and the realization that the Spanish and French might resist English North
122 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 208-9. 123 Games, The Web of Empire, 10. 124 David B. Quinn, Set Fair for Roanoke: Voyages and Colonies, 1584-1606 (Chapel Hill: North Carolina
Press, 1985), 417-419. 125 ENEV, 87; William Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania: The narrative of the North
Virginia voyage and colony,” in ENEV, 414.
American colonization with force. The Virginia Companies were both joint stock
ventures seeking financial returns, and they came to depend on the expertise of trade
voyage veterans in their attempts to profit from their North America colonies.
*
Trade Voyage influence on the Economic Goals of Jamestown and Sagadahoc
The early seventeenth-century English trade voyages convinced the London and
Plymouth Companies that North America colonization based on trade was viable. Karen
Kupperman argues that the London Virginia Company was an extension of England’s
commercial expansion in the Mediterranean providing Jamestown with its trade station
organization. Alison Games demonstrates the influence of England’s Mediterranean trade
ventures on the London Virginia Company using the overlap in investors between
English companies, with a forty percent investor overlap between the London Virginia
Company and the eastern trading companies.126 The leadership of the London and
Plymouth Companies were deeply involved in the Mediterranean trade, but their attempts
to expand into the North America trade were based on the information provided by
English trade voyages.
John Brereton’s account of the 1602 Gosnold voyage emphasized the availability
of a variety of furs in northern Virginia and mentions the crew spending several days
trading for furs.127 Similarly, Rosier’s 1605 account of the Waymouth voyage discussed
the fur trade opportunities in Virginia and Rosier claimed to have traded for 40 beaver,
otter, and sable skins in a single trade session in return for only five shillings worth of
126 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project 184, 212; Games, The Web of Empire, 83,118. 127 Brereton, “A BRIEFE AND TRVE RELATION,” in ENEV, 154-5.
English merchandise.128 The published accounts describing the English trade voyages
provided the London and Plymouth Companies with evidence that profitable North
America trade colonies were possible. The London and Plymouth Companies utilized the
Mediterranean trade model in Jamestown and Sagadahoc, but their trade colonies relied
on North American trade experience to determine and exploit the profitable products of
Virginia.
Gabriel Archer was responsible for writing the initial report on the Chesapeake in
1607; it would be influential in shaping the London Council’s views of the region and
their tactics in attempting to profit from Virginia. Archer’s trade voyage experience
shaped his views of the Chesapeake’s profitable products in his report. In his report to the
London Council, Archer cited his experience on the 1602 Trade Voyage of Gosnold to
northern Virginia stating, “…out of my own experience not far off to the northward…in
my first voyage to Virginia.”129 Some of the main commodities Archer identified in the
Chesapeake were plentiful sturgeon, with the possibility of herring and cod, ship stores,
including clapboard, resin, turpentine, and Native trade products including substantial
amounts of furs, tobacco, and sassafras.130
Archer included many other possible sources of profit to make the country seem
profitable to the London Company. Yet, Archer gave little attention to many possibilities
which were central to the London Virginia Company’s objectives, such as mineral wealth
and Mediterranean products. On the topic of minerals Archer simply stated, “extract from
128 Rosier, “A Trve Relation,” in ENEV, 273. 129 Archer, “The Description of the now discovered River and Country of Virginia,” in NAW Vol.5, 274. 130 Ibid., 274-5.
minerall earth Iron copper &c…”131 Archer did not even speculate on the possibility of
gold or silver in his initial report, and he was more interested in realistic and established
products. Sassafras, ship stores, fish, and Native trade goods such as furs were all
products Gosnold’s trade voyage to northern Virginia and other English North American
trade voyages had sought and obtained in some amount.132
Sassafras was a mainstay of the English North American voyages between 1602
and 1606 and the main profit from the voyages of Gosnold, Mace, Pring, and Gilbert in
1602-3.133 Sassafras root was widely believed to have medicinal purposes including
curing syphilis in the late sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries.134 Colonists at
Jamestown and Sagadahoc pursued this established trade voyage product in 1607 as a
possible means of funding their colonies. The Jamestown council’s initial report to the
London Council argued that:
Our easiest and richest commodity being Sasafrax rootes were gathered vpp by the Sailors with losse and spoile of manie of our tooles…I beleeve they haue thereof two tones at the leaste which if they scatter abroad at their pleasure will pull downe our price for a long time.135
The search for sassafras as a marketable commodity in Jamestown and the hope that
sassafras could substantially contribute to funding Jamestown was likely the result of
131 Ibid., 275. 132 Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV, 118, 130; Martin Pring’s Voyage,” in
ENEV, 226-227; Rosier, “A Trve Relation,” in ENEV, 263-4, 273. 133 For the focus on sassafras in the 1602 Gosnold and Mace voyages. See, ENEV, 51-2; “Martin Pring’s
Voyage to ‘North Virginia’ in 1603,” in ENEV, 219, 227; Brereton Estimates Sassafras prices at 3 shillings a pound, and in 1603 Raleigh estimated the price of sassafras to be 10-20 shillings a pound. Gosnold’s 1602 voyage brought back 2200 pounds of sassafras according to Ralegh and Gosnold. This would generate a profit of between 275-1600 pounds. See, Brereton, “A BRIEFE AND TRVE RELATION,” in ENEV, 160; Walter Ralegh, “Sir Walter Ralegh to Sir Robert Cecil,” in ENEV, 205-6; Bartholomew Gosnold, “Bartholomew Gosnold to Anthony Gosnold, 7 September 1602,” in ENEV, 210.
134 ENEV, 20; Archer reports sassafras as curing a poisoned man during his 1602 voyage, Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV,130.
135 Council of Virginia, “Coppie of a letter from Virginia,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I,79.
Gosnold, Martin, and Archer’s previous experience in North American trade voyages,
which depended on sassafras for a considerable portion of their profits.136
Discussing the products of northern Virginia in 1607, the Davis Journal of the
Sagadahoc colony lamented, “…and hurtes in aboudaunce only they found no Saxafras at
all in the Country.”137 Martin Pring’s involvement in the Plymouth Virginia Company
might explain the Sagadahoc colony’s hopes for sassafras, but the promotional literature
of the 1602-5 trade voyages had also made sassafras a well-known North American
commodity. The Jamestown colonists’ unrealistic hopes of satisfying the London
Company with two tons of sassafras and the Sagadahoc colonists’ frustration at finding
no sassafras near their colony demonstrates the direct influence North American trade
voyages had on these English colonies. Similar examples of direct influence in the early
records of Jamestown and Sagadahoc are minimal for many of the precedents the
scholarship favours in explaining the development of these Virginia colonies, such as
Mediterranean trade experience and Irish colonization.138 The Jamestown and Sagadahoc
colonists’ identification of fishing as a viable means of generating profits was also the
result of these colonists’ trade voyages experience.
The trade voyages of Gosnold, Pring, and Waymouth focused on codfish as a
plentiful northern Virginia commodity; with West Country fishing interests financing
136 Ralegh,“Sir Walter Ralegh to Sir Robert Cecil,” in ENEV, 205-6. 137 Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV, 408. 138 Andrew Hadfield argues that Irish colonization represented an important context for English expansion,
but direct connections between Irish colonization and English North American colonization are difficult to find. Hadfield, “Irish Colonies and the Americas,” in Appelbaum and Sweet eds., Envisioning an English Empire, 174, 189; Games, The Web of Empire, 83,118; Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 132.
both the Pring and Waymouth voyages.139 The Davis Journal of the Sagadahoc colony
mentioned small-scale fishing by the colonists and the possibility of exploiting Virginia’s
coastal fishery declaring:
…hear w[ee] fysty three howers & tooke near to hundred of Codes very great & large fyshe bigger & larger fyshe then that which coms from the bancke of the new Foundland. Hear wee might have Lodden our shipe in Lesse time then a moneth.140
The short-lived nature of the Sagadahoc colony precluded any attempt at combining
extensive fishing with colonization, but it certainly was on the minds of the colonists as
one possible source of income. After the Sagadahoc colony’s failure, Plymouth men
including Gorges and Francis Popham continued to send seasonal voyages to northern
Virginia to trade and fish for cod.141
The trade voyages of Mace and Gilbert to southern Virginia did not focus on
fishing, but the Jamestown personnel with experience in northern Virginia repeatedly
identified fish as a profitable commodity in Jamestown. The initial report of the
Jamestown council to the London Company listed sturgeon as a possible commodity, and
Archer repeatedly highlighted the profitability of fishing stating, “meerly our fishing for
Sturgeon cannot be less worth then 1000li a yeare, leaving hering and codd as
possibilityes.”142 Archer’s emphasis on fishing in his 1607 report reflected his experience
in northern Virginia, and was representative of other veterans of northern Virginia
voyages such as the Jamestown council members Gosnold and Martin. These men’s trade
voyage experiences directly affected Jamestown’s economic objectives and development
139 ENEV, 212, 248. 140 Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV, 419. 141Gorges, A briefe narration, in ENEV, 346. 142 Archer, “The Description of the now discovered River and Country of Virginia,” in NAW Vol.5, 275.
in ways that more distant influences such as the colonies of Roanoke and English trade
experiences in the Mediterranean did not.
The Virginia Company heeded Archer’s advice, employing the Discovery to fish
offshore of Virginia, and sending Captain Argall north from Jamestown to fish for cod
near the site of the former Sagadahoc colony in 1610.143 More than 170 fishhooks dating
from 1607-1612 have been found in the vicinity of the Jamestown site, and the majority
of these hooks were designed for offshore cod fishing.144 The personnel and promotional
literature of the English trade voyages influenced the Sagadahoc and Jamestown colonists
and led the dual Virginia Companies to attempt profitably fishing in the Chesapeake and
northern Virginia.
While the London and Plymouth Companies followed the colonists’ advice and
attempted to exploit Virginia’s plentiful fish, for the most part company leaders remained
fixated on gold and silver. The fish, ship stores, sassafras, and furs identified by the
Jamestown and the Sagadahoc colonists represented established trade voyage
commodities, but they would not yield the quick and substantial profits company
investors hoped for in Virginia. Only the discovery of gold and silver on the examples of
the Spanish in Mexico and Peru would have satisfied investors and turned Sagadahoc and
Jamestown into instant financial successes. In Jamestown, the initial reports of the
Jamestown council and Gabriel Archer made only vague promises of mineral wealth
143 James Pain, “Voyage of the Discovery to and from Virginia,” in NAW Vol. 3, 308; “Samuel Argall’s fishing voyage off the New England coast,” in NAW Vol. 3, 304.
144 Daniel Schmidt, “Subsistence fishing at Jamestown, 1607–24,” Post-Medieval Archaeology 40, 1 (2006), 5-6.
without mention of any tangible evidence.145 Yet, on his return to England Captain
Newport declared the discovery of gold.
Newport wrote to the Earl of Salisbury from Plymouth in July 1607 claiming,
“The contrie is excellent and veire Riche in gold and Copper, of the gould wee haue
brought a say…”146 This caused a short-lived sensation among the London Company
leadership, but was squashed soon after when the sample was found to be worthless.
Commenting on the situation in Virginia based on these initial reports, Walter Cope
wrote to the Earl of Salisbury:
Thys other daye we sent you newes of golde / And thys daye, we cannot returne yow so much as Copper / Oure newe discovery ys more Lyke to prove the Lande of Canaan then the Lande of ophir.147
Cope’s reference to the land of Canaan, or the land of milk and honey, shows that
Jamestown colonists’ recommendations for viable products such as fish, ship stores, furs,
and sassafras were having some effect on Company leaders who would slowly shift their
interests away from hopes of gold and silver. Scholars generally attribute the London
Company’s focus on mineral wealth to the precedents of Spain in Mexico and Peru.148
While the paramount example of Spanish conquests must have loomed large in the minds
of the Virginia Companies, there were more immediate reports of mineral wealth in
Virginia that tantalized the imaginations of the investors as well.
145 Council of Virginia, “Coppie of a letter from Virginia,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 79; Archer, “The Description of the now discovered River,” in NAW Vol.5, 275.
146 “Coppie of a Letter to ye Lord of Salisburie from Captain Newport ye 29th of Julie 1607, from Plimouth,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 76.
147 “Sir Walter Cope to Lord Salisbury, 13 August 1607,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 111. 148 April Hatfield argues the English utilized Spain’s conquests as examples for the simple reason that they
represented the only successful examples in light of English failures in Roanoke, Guiana, and implicitly Ireland. J.H. Elliott’s comparative analysis of Spain and English colonization reiterates these views, and features an entire chapter comparing Spain’s conquest of Mexico with English colonization in Virginia, Elliott, Empires of the Atlantic World, 3-28; Hatfield, Atlantic Virginia, 7-8.
The 1602 promotional pamphlet based on the trade voyage of Bartholomew
Gosnold argued for the existence of mineral deposits in Virginia, and supported these
assertions with a filtered amalgamation of French, Spanish, and English accounts.
Brereton’s account argued that mines must exist in the interior of northern Virginia, and
Gabriel Archer repeated this claim in an unpublished account of the same voyage.149 The
1602 pamphlet also drew excerpts from Richard Hakluyt’s Principal Navigations, using
the accounts of Cartier, de Soto, Laudonniere, Espeio, Xamuscado, Lane, Cabot, and
Verrazano to argue for the existence of gold and silver deposits inland where they,
“…cannot be farre from the great riuer that falleth into the Southwest part of the Bay of
Chesepioc.”150 These arguments culminated in a belief that mines existed in Virginia, and
directly influenced the London Virginia Company through Hakluyt, Gosnold, Martin, and
Archer.
The belief that a gold mine existed somewhere in the vicinity of the Chesapeake
would have been a primary factor in the London Company’s choice of the bay in 1606-7
given the investors interest in discovering gold. In arguing for the existence of mineral
deposits, Hakluyt drew select pieces of evidence from a variety of French, English, and
Spanish accounts written over the course of nearly 80 years and discussing regions from
New Mexico to Norumbega. Thus, these sixteenth-century sources were significantly
altered by Hakluyt as he filtered and combined them into an easily accessible form for
use in the 1602 promotional pamphlet. Hakluyt’s Principal Navigations, is a enormous
work, and many Englishmen would have relied on the information in the 1602
149 Brereton, “A BRIEFE AND TRVE RELATION,” in ENEV,157; Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV,122.
150 Richard Hakluyt, “Certaine brriefe testimonies touching sundry rich mines of Gold, Siluer, and Copper, in part found and in part constantly heard of, in North Florida,” in ENEV, 201-3.
promotional pamphlet rather than the original sources it cites. The 1602 pamphlet and the
promotional literature resulting from the early seventeenth-century English trade voyages
significantly influenced the form and dissemination of sixteenth-century French, Spanish,
and English accounts discussing mineral deposits in North America.
Despite the lack of clear Spanish influences in the events and documents of the
Sagadahoc colony, the Plymouth Company leadership hoped to discover mineral wealth,
very likely based on the information in the 1602 promotional pamphlet. In the 1602
pamphlet Hakluyt cited the existence of a copper mine in the Bay of Menan, the modern
Bay of Fundy, based on information from the French explorer Bellenger.151 William
Strachey, commenting on the failure of the Sagadahoc colony observed, “…and no
mynes discovered nor hope thereof, being the mayne intended benefitt expected to
vphold the Charge of this plantacion.”152 The Sagadahoc colony’s interest in mines
cannot be directly connected to Spanish precedents, due to the lack of Spanish activity in
the region, and demonstrates the direct influence of the 1602 pamphlet’s claims of mines
in northern and southern Virginia. In addition to mineral wealth, the London and
Plymouth Virginia Companies hoped for a Northwest Passage through the interior of
North America that would provide access to China and the east, and these hopes
influenced their plans for colonization.
Strangely, there was no explicit mention of a possible Northwest Passage in the
narratives of the Gosnold, Mace, Pring, Gilbert, and Waymouth voyages of 1602-5.153
151 Ibid., 203. 152 Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania,” in ENEV,415. 153 Captain George Waymouth conducted a separate voyage in search of the Northwest Passage in 1602,
and it is likely that he had a Northwest Passage in mind while searching the northern Virginia coast, ENEV, 59.
Yet, these voyages generally focused on exploring large rivers providing access to the
interior, and the search for a Northwest Passage was certainly one of their objectives.154
George Waymouth headed a search for a Northwest Passage through the arctic prior to
his voyage to northern Virginia, and he was interested in finding a Northwest Passage
through the river systems of northern Virginia.155
An edited reprint of Edward Hayes’ treatise on the Northwest Passage was
included in the 1602 promotional pamphlet along with descriptions of the Gosnold and
Mace voyages. Hayes argued for a Northwest Passage using the logic of a watershed,
with two rivers issuing from a lake and running into the Atlantic Ocean and the South Sea
or Pacific Ocean.156 This argument assumed North America was relatively narrow with a
single mountain range running down the spin of the continent, making it easier to
transverse than to circumvent.157
The concept of a Northwest Passage through the interior of North America was
still a relatively obscure idea in 1602 and most European maps from the 1590’s still
featured a wide North America with the classical depiction of the Northwest Passage
lying to the north of the continent.158 The belief in a Northwest Passage through the
154 Rosier’s account compares the St. George River to the Thames and Rio Grande and claims to have explored 40 miles upriver, Rosier, “A Trve Relation,” in ENEV, 290.
155 ENEV, 59. 156 Edward Hayes, “A Treatise, conteining important inducements for the plating in these parts, and finding
a passage that way to the South sea and China,” in ENEV, 177. 157 An excellent example of this geographic concept is provided in the 1651 map of Virginia by John Ferrar
which shows the Appalachian Mountains bordering on the Sea of China. John Ferrar, Virginia, 1651 [map] in Peter Whitfield, New Found Lands: Maps in the History of Exploration (London: British Library, 1998), 77.
interior of North America coexisted and competed with the older belief in a Northwest
Passage in the far north which was still actively sought in the seventeenth century by
explorers such as Henry Hudson.159 Hayes drew on French sources to make his argument,
and the concept of a river based Northwest Passage seems to originate in the sixteenth-
century French exploration of the St. Lawrence region.160 The Hayes treatise advocated
the establishment of fortified resupply bases as a necessary step in finding and protecting
a Northwest Passage.161 This concept of colonies as bases to find and exploit a Northwest
Passage through the interior of North America influenced the tactics of the Virginia
Companies.162
The Virginia Companies sought a Northwest Passage through the interior based
on Hayes’ postulation. In their “Instructions Given by Way of Advice,” the London
Company advised the Jamestown colonists to settle on the river running furthest inland
and heading towards the Northwest because, “…that way shall You soonest find the
Other Sea…”163Archer’s collection of Native information on the interior of the
158 John L Allen, “The indrawing sea: imagination and experience in the search for the Northwest Passage, 1497-1632,” in Emerson W. Baker, American Beginnings: Exploration, Culture, and Cartography in the Land of Norumbega. (University of Nebraska Press,1994), XXIII. Maps by Cornelius Wytfliet and Michael Mercator in 1597 and 1595 did not possess Northwest Passages through the interior of North America, for additional examples of English maps featuring the older Northwest Passage through the arctic. See, James Beare, World Map, 1578 [map] in Whitfield, New Found Lands, 50; Humphrey Gilbert, A discoverie for a New Passage to Cataia, 1576 [map] in Baker ed., American Beginnings, 27; Cornelius Wytfliet, Norumbega et Virginia, 1597 [map] in Baker ed., American Beginnings, 86-7; Michael Mercator, America Sive India Nova, 1595 [map] in Baker ed., American Beginnings, 47.
159 Henry Hudson, “Henry Hudson’s Journal records the discovery of Hudson Strait, April 17- August 7 1610,” in David B. Quinn, Alison M. Quinn, and Susan Hillier. New American World: A Documentary History of North America to 1612: Volume 4: Newfoundland from Fishery to Colony. Northwest Passage Searches (New York: Arno Press, 1979), 277-8.
160 Hayes referenced works by Jacques Cartier and Jaques Noel in the St. Lawrence region. The connections between French and English North American activity will be addressed in chapter three. Hayes, “A Treatise,” in ENEV, 177.
161 Ibid., 177. 162 Ibid., 178-9 163 The London Council, “Instructions given by way of advice,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol.
I, 49.
Chesapeake is further evidence of the London Company’s use of the Hayes treatise.164
Hayes’ treatise encouraged the use of Native informants in collecting information on the
interior of North America.165 In his initial report to the London Council, Archer did not
encourage hopes for gold or silver but he opened his report with a confirmation of a
Hayes inspired Northwest Passage to the South Sea and China declaring:
This River…extends it self 160 myles into the mayne land betwene two fertile and fragrant bankes, two miles a mile & where it is least a quarter of a myle broad, navigable for shipping of 300 tunn 150 miles...not two dayes iourney, it hath two branches which come through a high stoney Country from certaine huge mountaines called Quirank, beyond which needs no relacion…166
Through Gosnold, Martin, and Archer, preconceptions and objectives formed during the
English trade voyages had a powerful and immediate influence in Jamestown, and
Archer’s 1607 report affected the impressions of the London Virginia Company as well.
The search for a Northwest Passage in the Chesapeake continued to motivate the London
Company past the colony’s initial explorations with John Smith and Christopher Newport
still hopefully searching the Chesapeake in 1608-9.167 This hope would be slow to fade
and John Ferrar’s 1651 map of Virginia still showed the Pacific Ocean or South Sea just
on the other side of the Appalachian Mountains.168
The Sagadahoc colony’s location on a large river and Strachey’s observation that
Raleigh Gilbert made many discoveries of the neighbouring rivers indicated a similar
164Gabriel Archer, “A relation of the Discovery of our River, from James Forte into the Maine: made by Captain Christofer Newport, 21 May – 21 June 1607,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 83, 87.
165 Hayes, “A Treatise,” in ENEV, 177. 166 Archer, “Description of the River and Country,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 98-99. 167 Smith, “The Proceedings,” in NAW Vol. 5, 321, 323. 168 Ferrar, Virginia, 1651 [map] in Peter Whitfield, New Found Lands, 77.
interest in finding a Northwest Passage.169 In 1607 President George Popham sent King
James a report from the Sagadahoc colony confirming the South Sea only seven days
inland from the colony based on Native reports.170 Western European explorers sought
the Northwest Passage throughout the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries, but hopes for
a Northwest Passage through the interior of North America were a more recent French
and English innovation. Edward Hayes’ treatise and the individuals such as Gabriel
Archer with experience in English trade voyages to North America championed the
concept of a Northwest Passage through the interior and directly affected the Plymouth
and London Virginia Companies’ search for a Northwest Passage.171
In the scholarship on England’s American expansion, the two failed colonies of
Roanoke are considered central in explaining the colony of Jamestown. To David Quinn
the legacy of the first colony of Roanoke was the substantial literature the colony
produced.172 Richard Hakluyt compiled and printed this large body of literature in 1588,
and the work had as many as a 1,000 copies circulating in 1606.173 Kupperman also sees
Roanoke influencing early Virginia through this literature. To demonstrate this
connection, Kupperman uses the Virginia Company’s purchase of Thomas Harriot’s
works and the involvement of Richard Hakluyt as a member of the London Virginia
Company.174 Both Quinn and Kupperman establish links between Roanoke and Virginia,
169 Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV, 431, Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania,” in ENEV, 414.
170 George Popham, “Captain George Popham to King James I, from Fort St. George 13 December 1607,” in ENEV,454.
171 The search for a Northwest Passage through the interior of North America also resulted from the English trade voyages’ connections and competition with the French who sought a Northwest Passage through the St. Lawrence River. These connections with be discussed in the next chapter.
172 Quinn, Set Fair for Roanoke, 416. 173 Ibid., 417-419. 174 Karen O. Kupperman, Roanoke: The Abandoned Colony (Lanham: Rowman & Littlefield, 1985), 81.
but there is no clear way of demonstrating the importance of this literary connection in
practice.
An objective specific to the London Company was the search for Raleigh’s lost
colonists of Roanoke. Up to his arrest in 1604, Raleigh maintained his North American
monopoly based on the assumption that the Roanoke colonists were still alive in
Virginia.175 Trade voyages sent to southern Virginia including Mace in 1602 and Gilbert
in 1603 were also searching for these lost colonists.176 In addition to Hakluyt’s claims of
gold near the Chesapeake Bay in the 1602 promotional pamphlet, the possibility of the
lost colonists living in the Chesapeake was another incentive for the London Company to
choose the bay for their colony. The recovery of the lost colonists would have added
credibility to English claims to Virginia among Western Europeans based on effective
occupation, and these experienced colonists would have proven invaluable in providing
information on the geography and products of the Chesapeake.177 Thomas Canner’s
account of Gilbert’s 1603 voyage clearly illustrated the perceived connection between the
lost colonists and the Chesapeake as Canner stated:
…so that if the winde should stand, then we should fetch the Bay of Chesepian, which Master Gilbert so much thirsted after, to seeke out the people for Sir Walter Raleigh left neere those parts in the yeere 1587.178
In 1608-9 the Jamestown colonists made an effort to find the lost colonists with
Sicklemore searching Chawonock and Powell and Todkill going with the
175 ENEV, 35. 176 “A briefe Note,” in ENEV, 166, Canner, “Thomas Canner’s Account of Bartholomew Gilbert’s
Voyage,” in NAW Vol. 5,165. 177 For discussion of the argument for effective occupation among the French and English, and the expected
benefits of find the lost colonists. See,W.J. Eccles, The French in North America, 3; Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 238.
178 Canner, “Thomas Canner’s Account of Bartholomew Gilbert’s Voyage,” in NAW Vol. 5, 165.
Quiyoughquohanocks to Mangoages seeking news of the Roanoke colonists.179 While the
search for the lost colonists of Roanoke demonstrated the influence of the Roanoke
colonies on the objectives of Jamestown, it also revealed the limits of Roanoke’s power
in Jamestown.
The search for the lost colonists is the only direct connection that can be
established between Roanoke and Jamestown, and it was only one of many objectives in
early Jamestown. Smith reported that Newport returned to Jamestown in 1608 with a
private commission not to return without gold, a confirmed Northwest Passage, or
Raleigh’s lost colonists.180 Thus the search for the lost colonists competed with many
other objectives in Jamestown. In contrast, many of Jamestown’s objectives resulted from
or were substantially influenced by the North American trade voyages which have been
underrepresented in the scholarship in favour of precedents such as Roanoke.
*
English Perceptions of the North American Climate and Native American Behaviour
The 1602-1605 English trade voyages were central in shaping the Virginia
Companies’ perceptions of the North American climate. These seasonal trade voyages
would depart England in early spring taking the northern route by way of the Azores
Islands, or the southern route by way of the Canary Islands and the West Indies to the
179 John Smith, “The Proceedings,” in James P. P. Horn. Captain John Smith: Writings With Other Narratives of Roanoke, Jamestown, and the First English Settlement of America (New York: Library of America, 2007), 70.
180 Ibid., 104.
coast of North America.181 These voyages would generally return in summer, after
spending several months on the North America coast.182 During seasonal trade voyages
English observers witnessed warm and pleasant springs and summers without any
knowledge of the cold of North American winters, warping English perceptions of the
North American climate.183
Europeans did not understand the continental climate of eastern North America
with its warmer summers and colder winters than those of Western Europe’s maritime
climate.184 Bartholomew Gosnold described the climate of northern Virginia to his father
in 1602 explaining:
it is in the Latitude of 41 degrees, and one third part; which albeit it be so much to the Southward, yet it is more cold then those parts of Europe, which are scituated vnder the same paralell:but one thing is worth the noting, that notwithstanding the place is not so much subiect to cold as England is, yet did we finde the Spring to be later there, then it is with vs here, by almost a moneth…but doubtless their Summer continues longer than ours.185
Gosnold’s observation that the climate of North America was cooler than similar latitudes
in Europe was an uncommon insight, but ultimately Gosnold held northern Virginia to be
warmer than England based on the spring and summer timing of his voyage. The
published accounts of Brereton and Rosier discussing the Gosnold and Waymouth
181 ENEV, 1-2, for southern route. See, Canner, “Thomas Canner’s Account of Bartholomew Gilbert’s Voyage,” in NAW Vol. 5, 163-5. For northern route. See, Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV, 114-5.
182 Archer reports the 1602 expedition returning in July of 1602, Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV, 138. The Pring account reports the voyage returning to England in August, “Martin Pring’s Voyage to ‘North Virginia,” in ENEV, 228. Rosier reports the Waymouth voyage returning to England in July see, Rosier, “A Trve Relation,” in ENEV, 301.
183 Quinn, Explorers and Colonies, 164. 184 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 159-160. 185 Gosnold, “Bartholomew Gosnold to Anthony Gosnold,” in ENEV, 209.
voyages depicted northern Virginia as abundant and temperate, with Rosier claiming that
the climate was very similar to England, only somewhat warmer inland.186
While the accounts of southern Virginia trade voyages in 1602 and 1603 did not
contain any substantial discussion of climate, the English gauged the climate of southern
Virginia based on latitude resulting in an assumption that southern Virginia was warmer
than northern Virginia and possessed a Mediterranean climate.187 The climatic
phenomenon referred to as the Little Ice Age led to colder global temperatures in the
early modern period and intensified the colder winters of eastern North America in the
early seventeenth century.188 The Thames was reported to have frozen over completely in
the winter of 1608, and the English colonists would face similarly intense winters in
Jamestown and Sagadahoc.189 The London and Plymouth Companies’ perceptions of
North America’s climate were shaped by the misleading experiences of seasonal English
trade voyages in 1602-1605, to their detriment.
The initial reports on the Chesapeake in 1607 mirrored the previous trade voyage
accounts in their overly optimistic views of the climate and agricultural productivity of
the region. The Jamestown colonists arrived in the Chesapeake in late April and Captain
Newport sailed for England at the end of June with the colonists’ initial reports on the
country.190 The impressions of the region in these reports suffered from the same seasonal
nature as the previous trade voyages, and the English had not yet experienced a winter in
186 Brereton, “A BRIEFE AND TRVE RELATION,” in ENEV, 159, Rosier, “A Trve Relation,” in ENEV, 300.
187 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 159. 188 Brian M. Fagan, The Little Ice Age: How Climate Made History, 1300-1850 (New York: Basic Books,
2000), 104-5, 151. Studies of wine harvests in Southern Europe indicate that the years from 1600-1609 were relatively cold compared to the era from 1617-1650.
189 Gorges, A briefe narration, in ENEV, 345. 190 Percy, “A Discourse of the Plantation,” in NAW Vol.5, 268, 272.
North America during the seventeenth century. The most detailed and positive report
came from Gabriel Archer who described the land as:
…more fertill then canbe wel exprest it is altogether Aromaticall…It yeelds two cropps a yeare. Being tempered and tyme taken I hould it natures nurse to all vegetables, for I assure myself no knowne continent bringe forth any vendible necessaryes which this by planting will not afford…191
Archer’s report on the Chesapeake reiterated claims of a North American paradise similar
to his unpublished 1602 account of northern Virginia and the published accounts of
Brereton and Rosier. Archer was directly influenced by his trade voyage experience as he
made sensational claims based on a cursory inspection of the Chesapeake over a period of
less than two months. These reports had a strong impact on the London Company’s views
of the region. Various London Company members reiterated Archer’s positive view of
the region’s climate and agricultural productivity in correspondence following Newport’s
return to England in 1607.192
The unrealistic optimism of the initial reports soon proved false in Jamestown as a
year of scarcity, hunger, and sickness followed the departure of Newport.193 The
Chesapeake did not possess the Mediterranean climate the English had expected, and the
bitter winter of 1607-1608 nearly froze over the James Rivers and gave several
Jamestown colonists frostbitten feet.194 The misinformation in the initial reports had
lasting effects on the colony, as the London Company repeatedly undersupplied
191 Archer, “The Description of the now discovered River,” in NAW Vol.5, 274-5. 192 Gorges, “Sir Ferdinando Gorges to Earl of Salisbury,1607 August 7,” in NAW Vol.3, 414; Cope, “Sir
Walter Cope to Lord Salisbury, 12 August 1607,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 108; Dudly Carleton, “Dudly Carleton to Chamberlain, 18 August 1607,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 113.
193 Wingfield, “replies to the charges made against him in Virginia,” in NAW Vol. 5; Percy, “A Discourse of the Plantation,” in NAW Vol. 5, 273.
194 Francis Perkins “Francis Perkins in Jamestown to a Friend in England, 28 March 1608,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 160.
Jamestown in the following years, expecting the plenty of the Chesapeake to feed the
colonists. Despite Archer’s report on the Chesapeake’s fertility, agricultural yields in the
Chesapeake would be extremely limited in the early years of Jamestown. A devastating
drought struck the North America Southeast in the early seventeenth century leading to
reduced crop yields.195 Sustained primarily by the native Powhatans’ limited foodstuffs
through 1607-1609 Gabriel Archer lamented in 1609:
…Whereupon Captaine Newport and others haue beene much to blame to informe the Counsell of such plenty of victual in this Country, by which meanes they haue been slacke in this supply to give conuenient content….if you finde not returne of Commodity so ample as you may expect, because the law of nature bids vs seeke sustenance first…196
While Archer conveniently ignored his own role in misinforming the London Company,
he shows the lasting effects that the colonists’ initial impressions of the Chesapeake had
on Jamestown. The Jamestown colonists’ mistaken reports in 1607 were the result of
their limited knowledge of the Chesapeake’s climate and their use of trade voyage
experiences and literature which overstated the natural plenty and agricultural fertility of
North America.
While detailed records of the events in Sagadahoc are lacking, the colony clearly
suffered from similar misconceptions concerning the North American climate. In 1608
prior to the abandonment of the colony, Ferdinando Gorges claimed in a report to the Earl
of Salisbury that the region had an excellent climate.197 Every contemporary description
of the colony’s failure fixated on the extremely cold winter of 1607-8 as one of the
195 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 169-170. 196 Gabriel Archer, “A Letter of M. Gabriel Archer touching the Voyage of the Fleet of ships, which arriued
at Virginia, without Sir Tho. Gates, and Sir George Summers, 31 August 1609,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. II, 282.
197 Ferdinando Gorges, “Sir Ferdinando Gorges to the earl of Salisbury reporting the dispatch of additional ships to the colony, 20 March 1608,” in ENEV, 458.
primary causes for abandoning the colony in 1608.198 The narratives of Brereton, Pring,
and Rosier misinformed the Sagadahoc colony with promises of a temperate climate
similar to England in northern Virginia, leaving the colonists unprepared for the cold
northern Virginia winter of 1607-8 intensified by the Little Ice Age. The winter proved so
severe that Sagadahoc’s leadership evacuated approximately half of the Sagadahoc
colonists in December of 1607 on the Gifte of God.199 The colony was abandoned in 1608
due to the harsh winter, the deaths of the colony’s first President George Popham,
Raleigh Gilbert’s decision to return to England to claim his inheritance, and the death of
the Plymouth Company’s main investor Chief Justice Popham.200 The London and
Plymouth Companies’ relied on information gained in seasonal trade voyages to
determine the climate of Virginia, and this led to catastrophic miscalculations in
Sagadahoc and Jamestown as the colonists realized Virginia was not the paradise
Brereton, Rosier, and Archer had reported.
Beyond establishing the general perception of North America’s climate among
many of the Jamestown and Sagadahoc colonists and several members of the Virginia
Companies, the trade voyages provided tactics for determining the healthiness of the
local climate based on the Native inhabitants. In his 1602 account Brereton established a
connection between the health of the English while in northern Virginia, they did not
have a single sick man during the entire voyage, and the climate which was reflected in
the “perfect constitution of body” seen in the local Native population.201 Gosnold, in a
198 “Retrospect by the Council of New England on the events of 1606-8,” in ENEV, 337; Gorges, A briefe narration, in ENEV, 345; Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania,” in ENEV, 414.
199 Samuel Purchase, “North Virginia Voyages,” in ENEV, 349; Gorges, A briefe narration, in ENEV, 345. 200 Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania,” in ENEV, 415; Gorges, A briefe narration, in
ENEV, 345-6. 201 Brereton, “A BRIEFE AND TRVE RELATION,” in ENEV, 159.
letter to his father, similarly associated the tall stature and well proportioned bodies of the
Natives with the healthy climate of Virginia.202 The London Company adopted this
simple tactic, judging the healthfulness of the climate based on the characteristics of the
native inhabitants instructing the Jamestown colonists to:
…take Especial Care that you Choose a Seat for habitation…You shall Judge of the Good Air by the People for Some part of that Coast where the Lands are Low have their people blear Eyed and with Swollen bellies…but if the naturals be Strong and Clean made it is a true sign of a wholesome Soil.203
Responding to these instructions, Archer described the Powhatan of the James Rives as,
“proper lusty men very strong runners exceedingly swiftly…” and included a description
of a healthy Powhatan man reported to be 110 years old.204
Archer’s firsthand experience in northern Virginia with Gosnold and Brereton
resulted in his initial belief in the healthfulness of the Chesapeake’s climate based on the
Natives. Ferdinando Gorges wrote to the Earl of Salisbury in 1607 after Newport’s return
from Virginia commenting that Newport reported the Chesapeake to be fertile with a
healthy climate.205 Using the faulty tactics of the North American trade voyages the
Jamestown colonists were overly positive on the healthiness of the Jamestown site, but
these illusions would soon fade. George Percy and John Smith reported that shortly after
Newport’s departure in 1607 the Jamestown colonists were struck by swelling, fever, and
flux leaving only five able bodied men and killing nearly half the colony.206 Sickness
202 Gosnold, “Bartholomew Gosnold to Anthony Gosnold,” in ENEV, 209-10. 203 The London Council, “Instructions given by way of advice,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol.
I, 52 204 Archer, “The Description of the now discovered River,” in NAW Vol.5, 276; Archer “A relation of the
Discovery of our River,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 94. 205 “Sir Ferdinando Gorges to Earl of Salisbury, 1607 August 7,” in NAW Vol. 3, 414. 206 Percy, “A Discourse,” in NAW Vol.5, 273; Smith, “The Proceedings,”, in NAW Vol. 5, 313; Wingfield,
“Wingfield’s replies to the charges made against,” in NAW Vol. 5, 278.
would continue to afflict the Jamestown colonists, and the colony of Virginia would have
high death rates for new arrivals for most of the seventeenth century.207 The precedents
currently used by scholars to explain the events in early Jamestown, such the literature of
the Roanoke colonies, English colonization in Ireland, and England’s Mediterranean
trade all lack the powerful direct influence demonstrated by the English North American
trade voyages’ effects on the English colonists and Virginia Companies’ perceptions of
the North American climate. Much of the information provided by the early seventeenth-
century trade voyages concerned the nature and behaviour of Native Americans, and this
detailed information would be central in forming the Virginia Companies’ policies.
With the creation of the dual Virginia Companies, the English government
encouraged the propagation of Protestantism and was concerned with the treatment of
Native Americans in Virginia. The Royal Council’s “Instructions for the Virginia
Company,” charged the London and Plymouth Companies with attempting to convert the
Natives using peaceful means to, “sooner drawne to the true knowledge of God and the
obedience of us.”208 Yet, this command had little real weight after the enlargement of the
Royal Council in March of 1607 to include fifteen members of the London Company and
ten members of the Plymouth Company, effectively giving each Company control over
their own affairs.209
207 Despite the arrival of 4,000 colonists in Virginia between 1610-1624, the colony had an estimated population of 1,000 in 1624, Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 293.
208 “Instructions for the Virginia Company, November 20 1606,” in NAW Vol.5, 204. 209 “Enlargement of the royal council for Virginia, March 9 1607,” in NAW Vol.5, 198-199. David Quinn’s
introduction to the document clarifies that this act essential left the Royal Council of Virginia, a body theoretically designed to regulate the Plymouth and London Virginia Companies, non-functional as its membership consisted of the leaders of the two Virginia Companies. Thus, the London and Plymouth Companies were essentially independent and given free rein to determine their own policies and objectives.
The London Company’s instructions to the Jamestown colonists demonstrated the
Company’s mixed expectations for Native relations in Jamestown. The London Company
instructed the colonists to establish their base upriver among the Natives to facilitate
trade, to be careful not to let the waged sailors ruin the Company’s trade with private
barter, to trade for corn to supplement their supplies, and to rely heavily on Native
guides.210 The London Company anticipated trading for marketable Native goods, but it
also assumed that there would be hostility and possibly violence between the colonists
and the local Natives.211 The London Company’s instructions warned the colonists not to
let the Natives block their access to the sea, to never let Natives hold or keep English
weapons, to trade for corn before the Natives realize that the English intend to plant a fort
among them, and to maintain a general appearance of strength or else risk encouraging
attacks through their weakness.212
The London Company’s expectation of English-Native hostility and conflict, in
addition to the threat of Spanish attacks, contributed to need for military experience
among the initial members of the Jamestown Council.213 The expectations of the London
Company likely had a complex heritage incorporating the examples of the Spanish in the
Americas, the French attempts to colonize Florida, and the two English Roanoke
colonies. Yet, the English trade voyages of 1602-1605 represent a substantial and
immediate source of information on the Natives of North America gained in a trade
210 The London Council, “Instructions given by way of advice,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 50, 51, 53, 51; Karen Kupperman Also discusses the mixed nature of the initial Jamestown instructions, but does not explore the trade voyage precedents leading to the creation of these instructions, Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 215-216.
211 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 212. 212 The London Council, “Instructions given by way of advice,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol.
I, 50, 52, 51. 213 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 208-9.
context which reflected Jamestown’s goals and was nearly absent from earlier
colonization attempts.
The London Company’s mixed expectations for English-Native relations can be
explained by the published accounts and firsthand knowledge of the North American
trade voyages, which experienced a mixture of peaceful interaction, hostility, and
violence with Native Americans, helping to shape the Company’s policies in 1606-7. The
narrative of Pring’s 1603 voyage to northern Virginia provides the best example of the
English ability to conduct peaceful trade with Native Americans. Martin Pring was an
experienced privateer seeking furs, sassafras, and fishing bases along the northern
Virginia coast.214 There is no recorded violence between Pring’s men and Natives of
northern Virginia in their frequent contact over several months.215 Pring’s account sums
up English interaction with the Virginia Natives explaining:
the people of the Countrey came to our men sometimes ten, twentie, fortie or threescore, and at one time one hundred and twentie at once. We vsed them kindly and gaue them diuers sorts of our meanst Merchandize. They did eat Pease and Beanes with our men…We had a youth in our company that could play vpon a gitterne, in whose homely Musicke they tooke great delight, and would giue him many things…and dancing twentie in a Ring, and the Gitterne in the middest of them, vsing many Sauage gestures, singing Io, Ia, Ia, Ia, Io...216
This vivid scene demonstrates the possibility of peaceful interaction, trade, and
cooperation between the English and Natives of North America, and stands in stark
contrast to the English-Native hostility and violence that would come to dominate the
214 Quinn, North America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements, 423; ENEV, 212-3. 215 James Axtell addresses the Pring, Gosnold, and Waymouth voyages from a Native perspective, but
overstates the hostility and violence experienced. Axtell focuses on the tensions over the numerous instances of cooperation and trade. James Axtell, “The Exploration of Norumbega: Native Perspectives,” in Emerson W. Baker, American Beginnings: Exploration, Culture, and Cartography in the Land of Norumbega (Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 1994), 158-163.
216 “Martin Pring’s Voyage,” in ENEV, 220.
events in Jamestown. English-Native cooperation and trade during North American trade
voyages influenced the London and Plymouth Virginia Companies hopes for a profitable
Native trade in Jamestown and Sagadahoc.
While the Pring voyage was successful in maintaining peaceful relations with the
Natives of Virginia over the course of their expedition, the English crew often exhibited
distrust, hostility, and fear towards the Natives. Upon landing on the Virginia coast the
English built a barricade to keep watch and provide protection against possible Native
attacks while they set to gathering sassafras.217 There are also passing references to the
treacherous nature of Natives in the account which were confirmed, in Pring’s view, by a
hostile standoff between four Englishmen and 140 Native warriors at the end of their stay
on the coast.218 The English were prone to feeling threatened when outnumbered, and
often overcompensated with force.219 Pring’s men delighted in the Natives’ fear of their
two mastiffs, and used the dogs to intimidate and chase away Natives when they had the
urge.220 Even the most positive encounters between the English and Natives during the
early seventeenth-century trade voyages exhibited undertones of fear and hostility on the
part of the English. Richard Hakluyt of the London Company was a key organizer of
Pring’s voyage and edited Pring’s narrative of the voyage.221 Pring himself would
become a member of the Plymouth Company. The London and Plymouth Companies
were aware of the events of the Pring voyage, and likely took Pring’s claims of Native
217 Ibid., 219. 218 Ibid., 227, 222. 219 Karen O. Kupperman, Indians and English: Facing Off in Early America (Ithaca: Cornell University
Press, 2000), 220-1. 220 “Martin Pring’s Voyage,” in ENEV, 221, 227. 221 ENEV, 214.
treachery into consideration when they were drafting their instructions for the Jamestown
and Sagadahoc colonists.
James Rosier’s account of Waymouth’s 1605 voyage presented similarly mixed
views of Native Americans, and an inconsistent record of Native-English interaction.
Rosier acted as cape merchant during the Waymouth voyage, and was responsible for
overseeing trade among Natives encountered along the coast of northern Virginia.222
Rosier was generally positive in his depiction of the Natives of Virginia. Rosier viewed
the Natives as a kind and civil people, leading him to renounce his previous belief that
they were inhuman heathens.223 Rosier’s Native interaction consisted mainly of peaceful
trade accompanied by feasting and formal courtesies. Rosier went so far as to trade for
unnecessary goods such as geese with the sole intent of maintaining good relations when
the Natives lacked furs or other valuable trade goods.224
Despite establishing a friendly trade relationship with various Native groups
including several tribes of the Eastern Abenaki, the English were on their guard and
Captain Waymouth was constantly wary of Native treachery.225 Commenting on the
treacherous nature of Natives, Rosier declared:
we began to ioyne them in the ranke of other saluages, who haue beene by trauellers in most discoueries found very treacherous : neuer attempting mischief, vntill by some remisnesse, fit opportunity affoordeth them certain ability to execute the same.226
222 Rosier, “A Trve Relation,” in ENEV, 270. 223 Ibid., 271. 224 Ibid., 280-1. 225 Ibid., 282, 288, 294-5. 226 Ibid., 283.
Rosier’s statement demonstrates that negative views of Native Americans were prevalent
among the English during the early seventeenth century. While Rosier occasionally refers
to the Natives of northern Virginia as treacherous he primarily sought to counter the
established negative view of Native Americans. Rosier’s mixed views of Natives
resonated with the London Company’s hopes for trade and fears of violence in their
instructions to the Jamestown colonists in 1607.
The London and Plymouth Companies would have been well aware of Rosier’s
account published as a promotional tract in 1605. The events of the Pring and Waymouth
voyages help to explain the London Company’s mixed expectations for Native relations
in Jamestown. The English trade voyages provided extensive information on the Natives
of Virginia and gave many Jamestown and Sagadahoc colonists’ firsthand experience in
both cooperative and hostile English-Native interaction. Native interaction during English
trade voyages possessed practical applications for the trade colonies of Jamestown and
Sagadahoc which were less prevalent in the more remote examples of Roanoke,
Mediterranean trade experience, Irish colonization, and the Spanish American conquests.
The limited record of the Sagadahoc colony does not contain a clearly defined
Native policy like the London Company’s “Instructions given by way of Advise”. The
best surviving indicator of the colony’s Native policy is a comment by Ferdinando
Gorges to the Earl of Salisbury in 1607 stating, “and the people tractable, (so discreete
courses bee taken with them).”227 The Davis Journal and William Strachey’s history of
227 “Sir Ferdinando Gorges to the earl of Salisbury, reporting the return of a vessel from North Virginia, 1 December 1607,” in ENEV, 447.
the colony suggested that English-Eastern Abenaki relations in the northern colony were
peaceful if not always amiable.228
The formation of the London and Plymouth Virginia Companies in 1606 was a
complex event with a plethora of immediate causes and contextual influences including
the accumulated knowledge of North America expeditions during the sixteenth century. It
is difficult to disentangle these various factors, and ultimately all are necessary in
explaining English colonization in 1607. Yet, factors varied in their influence and
proximity to the events of 1606-7. The English trade voyages to North America in 1602-
1605 were an intrinsic context for the Virginia Companies’ formation, and became
central in shaping the London and Plymouth Companies’ objectives, tactics, and views
through their published promotional tracts and the substantial overlap in personnel.
Individuals such as Bartholomew Gosnold, Martin Pring, Gabriel Archer, John Martin,
and the Eastern Abenaki captives Nahanda and Skidwarres were directly involved in
trade voyages and the colonies of Jamestown and Sagadahoc. These leading individuals
shaped the dual Virginia Companies’ views of the North American climate, Native
Americans, and the commodities of Virginia. Objectives central to the aims of the
London and Plymouth Companies including the search for a Northwest Passage through
the interior of North America and hopes for mineral deposits were strongly influenced by
the promotional literature and experiences of personnel involved in English trade
voyages.
228 The debate concerning Native relations in Sagadahoc will be addressed in chapter four. Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania,” in ENEV, 410-11; Biard, “Letter from Father Pierre Biard,” in Carayon, , 71.
The scholarship considers Jamestown’s trade station function the result of
England’s Mediterranean trade, overlooking the direct connections between North
American trade voyages and the trade colonies of Jamestown and Sagadahoc.229 The
English trade voyages were able to turn a profit based on Native trade and harvesting
North American products, providing the London and Plymouth Companies with what
seemed to be a viable model for self-sufficient American trade colonies. Many of
Jamestown’s and Sagadahoc’s economic objectives such as Native trade, fishing, and the
harvesting of sassafras were products of North American trade experience rather than
Mediterranean trade experience. The scholarship’s recent focus on England’s late
sixteenth and early seventeenth-century expansion in the Mediterranean needs to be
supplemented with a western component. This western trade, originating with the
Newfoundland fishery and West Indies privateers, resulted in North American trade
voyages in 1602-1605. While eastern trade experiences certainly had a powerful effect on
the leadership of the London and Plymouth Virginia Companies, the personnel on the
ground had little experience in the eastern trade. The numerous colonists in Jamestown
and Sagadahoc with trade experience had acquired it in the Americas rather than the
Mediterranean.
The colony of Virginia and the early settlement of Jamestown hold a privileged
place within the scholarship on England’s early expansion. Virginia was England’s first
permanent North American colony, and bridges Elizabethan colonization, commercial
229 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 37; Games, The Web of Empire, 118-120; Chaplin, “The British Atlantic.” in Nicholas Canny and Philip Morgan, The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World 220-21; Klooster, “The Northern European Atlantic World,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 167-8; Stern “British Asia and British Atlantic: Comparisons and Connections,” 695; Gerald MacLean and Nabil Matar, Britan and the Islamic World, 1558-1713, 14-16.
expansion, and literature with the many colonies established in the decades after
Virginia.230 Yet, Jamestown was no more important in 1607-8 than the northern colony of
Sagadahoc, and was simply the continuation of England’s North American trade activity,
such as the Newfoundland fishery, which continued to overshadow Jamestown in scale
and contemporary importance. Early Jamestown’s pivotal importance lies not in the
contemporary significance of the small and unprofitable colony, but in the uncommonly
large surviving primary source base the Jamestown venture produced. The documents
relating to Jamestown provide key examples of early English North American
colonization and English-Native interaction, compared to the limited record of Sagadahoc
and the short-term English-Native interaction during trade voyages.
The mixture of imperial and economic objectives in Jamestown and Sagadahoc
required the English colonists to be well versed in warfare and trade. These colonists
were central in shaping the development of England’s early North American colonial
empire both through their actions and their firsthand accounts which would influence the
decisions of company leaders in England. There is a marked absence of references to the
sixteenth-century Spanish American conquests, Irish colonization, the colony of
Roanoke, and English activity in the Mediterranean within the English North American
accounts dating from 1600-1609. Virtually all of Captain John Smith’s references to
these various precedents originate in his works published after 1612, rather than his three
230 Jack Greene’s 1988 The Pursuit of Happiness, marked a drastic shift from a New England centric view of America colonial history to a view which saw Virginia as the normative model for colonial development. While Greene did not expressly intend to create a Virginia centric view of American colonial history, his work was followed by an intensive scholarly focus on Virginia that continues today, Jack Greene, Pursuits of Happiness, XII-XIII.
works published from 1607-1612.231 In contrast, the writings of Gabriel Archer, the
Davis Journal of Sagadahoc, and numerous incidental documents and correspondences
dating from 1606-1609 contain frequent references to experiences and examples
originating in the English trade voyages In North America.
The next chapter will address the transition from North American trade voyages
to North American trade colonies which occurred simultaneously in Virginia and Acadia.
This transition was the result of France and England’s interconnected sixteenth-century
heritage of North American activity and their colonial competition in the early
seventeenth century. While the seventeenth-century trade voyages, Jamestown, and
Sagadahoc were all English ventures conducted under the political authority of the
English monarchy, they were also part of a larger transnational trend of trade and
colonization which closely linked England and France. The early seventeenth-century
French North American trade voyages and the colony of Port Royal Acadia provide
direct parallels to the English trade voyages and their influence on the colonies of
Jamestown and Sagadahoc.
231 Smith’s only reference to these various Spanish and English experiences in his first three works is a brief mention of Roanoke and Ralph Lane in his Map of Virginia. Smith’s later works contain substantial discussion of the Spanish American conquest’s and Smith’s personal experience in the Mediterranean, see, John Smith and William Symonds, A Map of Virginia. VVith a Description of the Covntrey, the Commodities, People, Government and Religion (Amsterdam: Theatrum Orbis Terrarum, 1973), 31; John Smith, “A Description of New England,” in James P. P. Horn. Captain John Smith: Writings With Other Narratives of Roanoke, Jamestown, and the First English Settlement of America (New York: Library of America, 2007), 128, 136-7; John Smith, The True Travels, in Horn. Captain John Smith, 696-721.
CHAPTER 3: PORT ROYAL, JAMESTOWN, AND SAGADAHOC: THE COMPARATIVE CONTEXT OF FRENCH AND ENGLISH NORTH AMERICAN
TRADE AND COLONIZATION 1580-1609
The French and English shared a connected sixteen-century heritage of North
American fishing, trade, and colonization that included cooperation and emulation. In the
early seventeenth century this relationship became one of intense competition over a
shared sphere of trade in North America, called northern Virginia by the English and
Acadia by the French. French and English competition for trade and a mutual fear of
exclusion were central in causing the creation of trade colonies in the early seventeenth
century. The French designed the colony of Port Royal Acadia to claim and defend
territory against the English, using military force and functioning as a trade station. Port
Royal continued the economic activities established in previous French trade voyages to
North America including the fur trade. Numerous colonists in Port Royal had experience
in French North America trade voyages, and the knowledge gained during these voyages
was central in formulating the colony’s tactics, objectives, and perceptions.
Port Royal’s economic objectives included Native trade, fishing, searching for
mineral deposits and a Northwest Passage to the South Sea. Each of these French
economic goals had close parallels in the English colonies of Jamestown and Sagadahoc.
The similarities between French and English economic objectives were the result of their
shared tradition of North American trade voyages and their exchange of information
through promotional literature, published documents, and personal connections. The
comparable economic objectives of the French and English in the initial stages of
colonization do not fit the scholarship’s strict economic divide of French fur trade
colonies and English agricultural colonies. This divide only arose after the trade voyage
precedents failed to support large and expensive trade colonies, forcing the French and
English to adapt to local conditions and economic realities.
Port Royal also drew on trade voyage experience to determine the climate of
Acadia. The seasonal nature of the French trade voyages led to an optimistic
misrepresentation of the climate, which left the French unprepared for the cold of North
American winters and soon led the French to question the viability of Acadian
colonization. French-Native interaction during seasonal trade voyages led the French to
develop mixed views of Native Americans that acknowledged the need for cooperation,
but were largely distrustful, disdainful, and even hostile to Natives in general. Based on
these mixed views of Native Americans, Port Royal’s initial Native policy considered the
possibility of violence with Native groups, sought the submission of the Acadian Natives,
but also acknowledged the French dependence on Native cooperation in the fur trade. The
French approximation of North America’s climate and the formation of their Native
policy based on the experiences of trade voyages closely resemble developments in the
English colonies of Jamestown and Sagadahoc.
The interconnected nature of the trade voyages and the establishment of trade
colonies by France and England in the early seventeenth century did not conform to the
nationalistic divide in culture, economic objectives, or Native policy that is prominent in
the scholarship on North American colonization. In emphasizing the divisions between
the French and English many scholars have overlooked the regional divisions and cultural
diversity within both France and England in the early seventeenth century. The royal
backing and national objectives of de Mons’ trade company and the London and
Plymouth Virginia Companies coexisted uneasily with these companies’ regional
associations and the regional identities of their colonists.
*
Competitive Sixteenth and Seventeenth-Century French and English Trade Voyages
Scholars studying England’s late sixteenth and early seventeenth-century
commercial expansion stress English competition with Spain as the driving force behind
this expansion, but these scholars have overlooked England’s contemporary competition
with France in North America.232 This trend is the result of recent scholars’ focus on the
Mediterranean and East, where the English were competing with the Spanish
commercially, rather than North America where the English were competing with both
Spain and France.233 Following the Spanish peace in 1604 competition between England
and Spain shifted from open conflict to a commercial rivalry.234
King James was vehemently against piracy and privateering and favoured
reopening legitimate trade with Spain and the Spanish Americas.235 Joyce Chaplin sees
England’s late sixteenth and early seventeenth-century commercial expansion through the
Levant, Muscovy, East India, and London Virginia Company as part of England’s desire
to compete with Spain in the context of the post-Elizabethan peace.236 Scholars focusing
on England’s economic competition with Spain have overlooked the extensive
connections between the dual Virginia Companies, England’s early seventeenth-century
North American trade voyages, and England’s contemporary economic competition with
France. English and French competition for North American trade during the late
See, footnotes 11, 61, 30 and adjoining discussion in Chaper One. 233 Fitzmaurice, “The Commercial Ideology of Colonization in Jacobean England,” 801; Kupperman, The
Jamestown Project, 3, 31-34. 234 William S. Goldman, “Spain and the Founding of Jamestown,” William and Mary Quarterly 68, 3
(2011) 435-6; Quinn, Explorers and Colonies, 323-326. 235 Ibid., 323. 236 Chaplin, “The British Atlantic,” in Canny and Morgan, The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World,
220-1.
sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries was a primary stimulus behind French and
English North American trade voyages, Jamestown, Sagadahoc, and the French colony of
Port Royal Acadia.
The French conducted trade voyages to North American throughout the sixteenth
century, and the English sought to emulate these French voyages. French fishermen
began operating seasonal trade voyages to northeastern North America in conjunction
with cod fishing sometime in the early sixteenth century.237 In the 1580’s voyages
concentrating on the fur trade in New France and Acadia became a seasonal occurrence
continuing into the seventeenth century.238 During the 1580’s English and French
fishermen, primarily Huguenots from La Rochelle, Navarre, and Normandy, maintained
close contact and cooperation in the Newfoundland fishery.239 Through contact with
French fishermen, England followed France in pursing North American trade as early as
1580.240 Englishmen interested in North American trade and colonization continued to
observe and imitate French trade voyages to North America throughout the late sixteenth
century.
In his 1584 report “A Discourse Concerning Western Planting,” Richard Hakluyt
recounted the voyage of his friend Stephen Bellinger, a merchant of Rouen, to the
Acadian coast in 1583 where he made a profit of 411 crowns.241 Hakluyt claimed the
French traded for more than 20,000 crowns worth of furs in 1583, and reported that the
French city of Saint-Malo sent five ships to Canada and the Gulf of St. Lawrence to trade
237 Biggar, The Early Trading Companies of New France, 29. 238 Quinn, North America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements, 390; DSOD, 46. 239 Quinn, North America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements, 417. 240 Ibid., 387. 241 Richard Hakluyt, “A Discourse Concerning Western Planting,” in NAW Vol. 3, 78.
for furs in 1584.242 Hakluyt sought to chastise English leaders with reports of French
activity in hopes of reinvigorating England’s North American ventures. Hakluyt’s report
confirms that French trade voyages influenced English plans for North American
ventures, and this influence often operated through personal connections between French
and English individuals such as the Hakluyt and his friend Bellenger. The English
continued to imitate the French by entering the fishing, walrus hunting, and whaling trade
in the Gulf of St. Lawrence in the 1590’s with the help of a French Basque pilot Stevan
Bocall.243 French and English trade activity in North America predated the economic
revival which followed the French-Spanish peace of 1598 and English-Spanish peace of
1604. Yet, it was the Spanish peace first in France and then England which led to the
simultaneous revival of competing French and English trade voyages to North America in
the early seventeenth century.
Following the end of the French religious civil war and the Spanish peace of
1598, King Henri IV of France attempted to encourage colonization in North America by
granting a fur trade monopoly in New France to the nobleman La Roche.244 In return for
the fur trade monopoly, King Henri charged La Roche with colonization. La Roche
planted a small colony on Sable Island which lasted until 1603, but King Henri soon
handed over the majority of New France to the another nobleman Chauvin.245 King Henri
granted fur trade monopolies to Chauvin and his successor Chaste from 1600-1603.246
242 Ibid., 81-2, 102. 243 Quinn, England and the Discovery of America, 324-328. 244 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 210; Samuel de Champlain, Henry Percival Biggar et al., The works of Samuel de
Champlain, Volume I (Toronto: Champlain Society, 1922), 229; DSOD, 49. 245 Trudel, The Beginnings of New France, 64-5; Champlain, Vol. I, 229; DSOD, 49. 246 Samuel de Champlain, Henry Percival Biggar et al., The works of Samuel de Champlain, Volume III
(Toronto: Champlain Society, 1936), 312-3; Champlain, Vol. I, 229; Biggar, The Early Trading Companies of New France, 42-43, 46-48.
Chauvin and Chaste’s monopolies required the establishment of colonies, but minimal
effort was put into this obligation with Chauvin leaving 16 men to winter in a makeshift
shelter at Tadoussac in 1600. 247
Chauvin and Chased largely ignored their obligations to enact colonization and
focused on the fur trade by sending four separate trade voyages, each consisting of
multiple ships, to North America from 1600-1603.248 The English trade voyages of 1602-
1605 were a direct imitation of these French voyages. The sudden resumption of English
activity in northeastern North America with Bartholomew Gosnold’s voyage to northern
Virginia in 1602 was an attempt to compete with the French by combining the French fur
trade with the English interest in collecting sassafras.249 Samuel Mace was also collecting
sassafras for Walter Raleigh in southern Virginia in 1602, and the supposedly medicinal
root may have been used to fund trade voyages to southern Virginia prior to 1602.250
1602 marked the resumption of France and England’s competition for North American
trade which would continue to influence events in Jamestown, Sagadahoc, and Port Royal
through trade voyage personnel such as Gosnold and Samuel de Champlain.
In 1603 two French ships were authorized to trade for furs in North America as
part of Chaste’s monopoly.251 The first ship under Gravé Du Pont traded at Tadoussac
before exploring up the St. Lawrence River, and the second ship under Sieur de Prevert
247 Trudel, The Beginnings of New France, 67-69; Champlain, Vol. I, 229; Champlain, Vol. III, 309-311; DSOD, 49-51.
248 Ibid. 249 ENEV,112. 250 Ibid., 34; “A briefe Note of the sending another barke,” in ENEV, 166-7. Haklyuty reports that the
English interest in sassafras originated in French documents discussing the Florida colonies in the 1560’s. See, Hakluyt, “A Discourse Concerning Western Planting,” in NAW Vol. 3, 77.
251 A third ship was granted to the city of Saint-Malo, “Extract from the Decrees of the Council of State, March 1603,” in DSOD, 207.
traded and explored along the Acadian coast.252 Samuel de Champlain was a member of
the Gravé voyage and wrote an account of the expedition published in 1603 under the
title Des Sauvages. Champlain published his account the year after the English
promotional pamphlet containing Brereton’s narrative of the Gosnold voyage and the
Hayes Treatise on colonizing northern Virginia. The French did not extensively utilize
promotional literature in the late sixteen century and the publication of Champlain’s
promotional account was likely inspired by the established English practice of using
firsthand accounts to generate support for North American ventures.
Conrad Heidenreich and Janet Ritch have found that traces of information within
Champlain’s 1603 account were likely taken from the Hayes Treatise of 1602,
concluding that Champlain’s account was essentially a French rebuttal to the 1602
English pamphlet.253 England’s northern Virginia included the North American coast
from the latitude of 38 to 45 degrees, but France also claimed this area in1602 under the
name of Acadia extending south to the latitude of 40 degrees.254 After 1602 the French
and English were directly competing for the trade of this region, and this rivalry
stimulated the transition from trade voyages to trade colonies in France and England.
With the death of Chaste in 1603, King Henri awarded the fur trade monopoly to
the Huguenot nobleman Sieur de Mons.255 The choice of de Mons represented the
continued prevalence of Huguenots in France’s North American trade, and de Mons’
colony would include a mixture of Huguenot and moderate Catholic investors and
252 Champlain, Des Sauvages, in DSOD, 355. 253 DSOD, 55, 460. 254 “The first Virginia Charter of April 10, 1606,” NAW Vol.5, 192; “The King’s Commission to Monsieur
de Monts for the colonisation of the lands of La Cadie, 1603,” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 212. 255 Champlain, Vol. III, 317-8; Champlain, Vol. I, 230; Lescarbot, Vol. II, 210-11.
colonists.256 Unlike the previous monopoly holders, de Mons intended to honour his
mandate to establish a substantial colony, choosing the contested coast of Acadia in 1603.
De Mons’ colony was a trade base in Acadia, but it also functioned to claim land for
France and to protect French claims to the region against the resurgence of English trade
and colonization efforts. The 1603 commission from the Lord High Admiral of France to
de Mons positioned the colony as a counter to the intentions of the English to colonize
Acadia clearly stating, “certain strangers design to go to set up colonies and plantations in
and about the said country of La Cadie, should it remain much longer…deserted and
abandoned.”257 The French transition from trade voyages to the trade colony of Port
Royal in 1603-4 was a direct result of competition with English trade voyages. Much like
the militarized English colonies in 1607, Port Royal possessed a distinct military
component and larger scale that differentiated it from the previous French trade voyages.
The late sixteenth-century North American cooperation between France and
England gave way to an imperial rivalry in the early seventeenth century, but King James
and King Henri hoped to maintain good relations and were both primarily concerned with
the continuing threat of Spanish power. David Quinn speculates that the failed voyage of
the Castor and Pollux, including a mixture of French and English investors and
crewmembers, sent out before the English-Spanish peace in 1604 was an attempt by
France and England to reach an amiable division of the disputed North American
256 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 233; Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 7; Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 8. 257 “Commission from Lord High Admiral, 1603” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 218, 493: “Et outre ce ayant receu
divers avis, qu'aucuns éstrangers designent d'aller dresser des peuplem s & demeures vers lesdites contrées de la Cadie, si comme elles ont esté jusque icy elles restent encore quelque temps desertes & abandonees.”
territory.258 France and England justified their claims to North American territory based
on previous exploration and trade in the region.259 Yet, due to their competing claims to
the North American coastline between the latitude of 38 and 45 degrees the French and
English ultimately came to rely on the establishment of bases to occupy the land
continuously.260 The French and English in Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc relied
on the occupation of territory backed by force of arms to secure their claims.261 Thus, the
core of each colony was a compact fort armed with cannons and defended by experienced
military men.
The Royal charter granting de Mons his monopoly had a strong military element
in its instructions and requirements for colonization. De Mons was instructed to build a
fort and maintain it with an armed garrison, as part of his, “…conquest, settlement,
colonisation, and preservation of the said land of La Cadie.”262 The Lord High Admiral’s
commission similarly mentioned the need to, “…build forts and fortresses…ports,
havens, and all else necessary for the safe retreat of French vessels from hostile designs
and piratical incursions.”263 De Mons carried out these defensive measures in 1604 on his
258 Beltran Rrogues and Pedro de Ynarra, “Proceedings in the case of the Castor and Pollux: Declaration of the armador, April 1605,” in NAW Vol. 5, 113; Quinn, Explorers and Colonies, 328-330.
259 For English and French claims based on first discovery. See, Richard Hakluyt, “A Discourse Concerning Western Planting,” in NAW Vol. 3, 109, “Extract from the Decrees of the Council of State,” in DSOD, 207.
260 For claims based on effective occupation see, “The King’s Commission to Monsieur de Monts,” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 212; “The first Virginia Charter of April 10, 1606,” NAW Vol.5, 191-192. For discussion of the argument for effective occupation among the French and English see, W.J. Eccles, The French in North America, 3.
261 Ian Kenneth Steele, Warpaths: Invasions of North America (New York: Oxford University Press, 1994), 23.
262 “The King’s Commission to Monsieur de Monts,” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 215. 492: “...expedition & execution des choses susdites, faire generalement pour la conquéte, peuplement, habituation & conservation de ladite terra de la Cadie...”
263 “Commission from Lord High Admiral,” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 219, 493-4: “riviere de Canada, ou autres païs: Construire des forts & forteresses, ainsi & en tels endroits qu'il verra estre plus commode: Comme aussi dresser des ports, havres & autres choses necessaires pour la seure retraite des vaisseux François contre tous desseins d'ennemis & incursions de pirates.”
arrival in Acadia. The French chose a small island in the midst of the St. Croix River for
the initial site of their colony.264 Champlain praised the defensible site with its high cliffs,
and the French set to building a fortified colony armed with cannons.265 De Mons, Gravé,
Champlain, and many of the colonists were military men with experience in the French
religious civil war.266 The group of 79 initial colonists also included a contingent of
skilled Swiss soldiers to bolster the colony’s defences.267 The French at Port Royal had
defensive concerns comparable to Jamestown and Sagadahoc in 1607, and these common
motivations led to similarities in the size, military nature, and defensive habitations of
each colony. French competition with the English over trade territory in North America
led to a transition from seasonal trade voyages, which made only small and half-hearted
attempts at colonization, to a large militarized trade colony intended to lay claim to the
region.
The revival of English North American activity in the early seventeenth century
beginning with the Gosnold Voyage in 1602 and culminating in the foundation of
Jamestown and Sagadahoc in 1607 was largely the result of this English-French
competition. The Gosnold voyage attempted to establish a small trade colony on the
French model in 1602, and the Hayes treatise emphatically argued for English
colonization in northern Virginia before the French could claim the area and exclude the
264 Champlain, Vol. I, 269-271. 265 Ibid., 270-1. 266 For Champlain, de Mons and the various other nobles’ military backgrounds see, “Payment of Various
Sums to Jean Hardy and Samuel de Champlain, for Their Wages and Traveling Expenses in the Royal Army of Brittany, March 1595 – April 1597,” in DSOD, 163-165; Lescarbot, Vol. II, 209-210; Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 7; Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 6.
267 Champlain, Vol. I, 304; Lescarbot, Vol. II, 255.
English.268 The English trade voyages of Pring and Waymouth also competed with the
French, and the Sagadahoc colonists feared a French attack in 1607-8.269 While
Jamestown focused on competition with Spain and feared a possible Spanish attack
English competition with France in northern Virginia helped to stimulate the North
American activity and interest that was central to the formation of both the London and
Plymouth Virginia Companies in 1606. Gosnold, Archer, and Martin transferred their
north Virginian trade voyage experiences and economic objectives derived from
competition with the French to Jamestown in 1607. The trade colonies of Port Royal,
Jamestown, and Sagadahoc possessed a common trade voyage heritage and similar
economic objectives.
*
The Economic Influence of Trade Voyages in Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc
The French colonization effort in 1604 included many Frenchmen who had
previous experience in the trade voyages of Chauvin and Chaste. Sieur de Mons the
primary investor and organizer of the 1604 colony and holder of Henri’s fur trade
monopoly had been to Tadoussac in New France as part of the Chauvin trade expedition
in 1600.270 Similarly, Gravé Du Pont who would assist de Mons in the fur trade and
commanded Port Royal in 1605-6 had extensive experience in the St. Lawrence region in
268 Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV, 127-8; Edward Hayes, “A Treatise,” in ENEV, 168.
269 “Sir Ferdinando Gorges to the earl of Salisbury, reporting the return of the Gifte of God, 7 February 1608,” in ENEV, 456-7.
270 Trudel, The Beginnings of New France, 67; Biggar, The Early Trading Companies of New France, 42.
1599-1603 as part of the Chauvin and Chaste fur trade monopolies.271 Samuel de
Champlain was part of the 1603 Chaste expedition, and served as the cartographer and
secretary in Port Royal.272 Scholars of French colonization acknowledge the connections
between the French trade voyages and the colony of Port Royal in general terms, but the
extent and specific nature of these connections are overlooked.273 French trade voyage
experiences shaped the tactics, objectives, and preconceptions of the French colonization
effort in Port Royal. In each case, this transfer of experience from trade voyages to Port
Royal represents direct parallels with the English trade voyages and their influence on the
colonies of Jamestown and Sagadahoc. The French and English colonization efforts in
Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc were far more similar and intrinsically linked
than the French and English scholarship has accepted.
Port Royal’s main economic objective in 1604-7 was exploiting de Mons’ fur
trade monopoly.274 Gravé oversaw the fur trade in the first year of the colony trading at
Canso and along the coast of the Gulf of St. Lawrence while de Mons proceeded to find a
suitable spot for his colony.275 The French also pursued trade while exploring the coast
south of Port Royal in 1604, 1605, and 1606.276 In the two major accounts of Port Royal,
Champlain and Marc Lescarbot occasionally mentioned other members of de Mons’
271 Champlain, Des Sauvages, in DSOD, 255; Champlain, Vol. I, 312-313; Biggar, The Early Trading Companies of New France, 42.
272 Champlain, Vol. I, 280. in a factum written in 1613 the merchants of Saint-Malo referred to Champlain as a passenger and an artist (pointre) in Port Royal, “Factum of the Merchants of Saint-Malo, January 1613,” in DSOD,199.
273 Biggar, The Early Trading Companies of New France, 51-64; Trudel, The Beginnings of New France, 54-92; DSOD, 3-82.
274 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 210; “The King’s Commission to Monsieur de Monts,” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 214; Champlain, Vol. I, 230.
275 Champlain, Vol. I, 233-4, 276. H.P. Biggar also mentions two ships sent from Saint-Malo as part of de Mons monopoly which traded in the St. Lawrence during 1604. See, Biggar, The Early Trading Companies on New France, 54.
276 Champlain, Vol. I, 296, 316, 398.
company, such as a group of Saint-Malo men encountered off the coast of Canso, and it is
clear that de Mons’ company continued to send out seasonal trade voyages alongside the
colony in Acadia.277 The French reliance on the fur trade also determined the original site
of the colony on St. Croix Island, as Champlain observed:
This place we considered the best we had seen, both on account of its situation, the fine country, and for the intercourse we were expecting with the Indians of these coasts and of the interior, since we should be in their midst.278
Port Royal’s primary source of income was the fur trade established by previous French
trade voyages. Port Royal’s focus on Native trade represented a parallel with English
economic objectives in Jamestown and Sagadahoc.
In the early seventeenth century French and English North American colonies
attempted to profit from Native trade and the varied outcomes of these trade colonies
were the result of local conditions rather than differing objectives. The London Virginia
Company intended Jamestown to be a trade base. While poor relations with the
Powhatans and trading for foodstuffs over profitable goods adversely affected the
colony’s trade function, there were attempts to establish a fur trade in the Chesapeake.
Gabriel Archer listed furs among the regions profitable trade goods in 1607, and during
his trade voyages throughout the Chesapeake Bay in 1608 John Smith was reported to
277 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 309; Champlain, Vol. I, 310, 390-1 451; Biggar, The Early Trading Companies on New France, 54.
278 Champlain, Vol. I, 271-2: “Qui est le lieu que nous iugeâmes le meilleur: tant pour la situation, bon pays, que pour le communication que nous pretendions auec les sauvages de ces costes & du dedans des terres estans au milieu d’eux.”
have collected, “…mantles and furs.”279 Later Smith complained that the waged sailors of
the resupply ship had bought all of the Natives’ furs, with one man taking 30.280
The Sagadahoc colony had some success in establishing a fur trade, although the
fragmented record leaves the scale of the trade a mystery.281 De Mons’ company was
much more successful in exploiting the fur trade in Acadia and New France. De Mons’
company earned an estimated 90,000 crowns in their first year.282 The Mi’kmaq of
Acadia and the Montagnais of the St. Lawrence were established fur trade partners with
more experience than the Eastern Abenaki in the region near Sagadahoc or the Powhatans
of the southern Chesapeake.283
Despite de Mons’ profits, the cost of Port Royal more than offset these gains and
the fur trade proved incapable of supporting his Acadian colony.284 Lescarbot mentioned
de Mons’ huge naval expenses during 1604-1607, and the Saint-Malo merchant factum of
1613 claimed Port Royal was an economic disaster with total losses of over 100,000
livres. 285 The competing French and English trade voyages transferred their common
interest in Native trade to Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc. While Native trade
was profitable during seasonal trade voyages it would prove incapable of supporting large
279 Archer, “The Description of the now discovered River and Country of Virginia,” in NAW Vol.5, 274-5; Smith, “The Proceedings,” in NAW Vol. 5, 321.
280 Ibid., 326. 281 Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania,” in ENEV, 414-5. 282 Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 41. 283 For discussion of Powhatans existing trade experience see, Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 73-107.
For the Eastern Abenaki’s trade experience at the time of Sagadahoc see, ENEV, 89. French and English accounts are littered with mentions of the Mi’kmaq speaking French and Basque pigeon languages, traveling using Basque Shallops, and engaging in trade along the Acadian coast. See, Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV, 420; Brereton, “A BRIEFE AND TRVE RELATION,” in ENEV, 145; Champlain, Vol. I, 442; Lescarbot, Vol. II, 309.
284 Biggar, The Early Trading Companies of New France, 65; Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 123. 285 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 250; “Factum of the Merchants of Saint-Malo,” in DSOD,197.
and expensive colonies in the early seventeenth century. French trade voyages also
transferred hopes for mineral deposits based on trade voyage accounts to Port Royal.
Based on the findings of previous trade voyages the French hoped for mines in
Acadia. In his 1603 account Champlain described his meeting with Sieur de Prevert who
led the Acadian branch of Chaste’s fur trade monopoly. Prevert reported a rich mine of
copper on the coast of Acadia.286 While Prevert’s report would eventually prove false,
Champlain and other Frenchmen involved in Port Royal considered his report credible at
the time.287 This apparent confirmation of mineral deposits contributed to de Mons’
choice to colonize Acadia in 1603-1604.
De Mons’ 1603 commission from the Lord High Admiral observed the possibility
of mines in Acadia, declaring, “on the advice and report lately made by the captains
recently returned thence of the number and quantity of good mines found therein, the
working of which will bring much profit and advantage.”288 De Mons and the French
government’s high hopes for mineral wealth in Acadia were based on the reports of men
involved in trade voyages such as Prevert. The royal commission to de Mons in 1603
commanded him to, “…survey all manner of mines, of gold, silver, copper, and other
metals and minerals.”289 The French government’s strong belief in the existence of
mineral deposits was demonstrated by the inclusion of a clause discussing the procedure
286 Champlain, Des Sauvages, in DSOD, 355,357. 287 Ibid. 288 “Commission from Lord High Admiral,” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 217-18, 493: “Que sur l'avis & rapport
nagueres fait par les Capitaines qui en sont derniers retournez, de nombre & quantité de bonnes mines qui y sont, lesquelles estant ouvertes pourront apporter beaucoup de profit & commodité.”
289 “The King’s Commission to Monsieur de Monts,” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 214. 491: “Faire soigneusement rechercher & reconoitre toutes sortes de mines d'or & d'argent, cuivre & autres metaux & mineraux, les faire fouïller, tirer, purger & affiner...”
for mining and the royalties due on any mineral wealth found in Acadia.290 These hopes
led the colonists at Port Royal to search for the copper mine reported by Prevert, and
other sites along the Acadian coast were repeatedly surveyed for mineral deposits.291 The
imperfect knowledge acquired in French and English trade voyages misled the French in
their search for mineral wealth in Acadia.
In the late sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries the French and English
repeatedly exchanged information on mineral deposits in North America, and each
groups’ hopes for mines were influenced by the other’s reports. In the 1602 promotional
tract on the Gosnold and Mace voyages, Richard Hakluyt reported the Frenchmen
Stephen Bellenger’s discovery of copper mines in the Bay of Fundy during his 1583
voyage.292 The English colony of Sagadahoc would have relied at least partially on these
older French reports of mines. Champlain and other members of the French expedition to
New France in 1603 seem to have been aware of this 1602 pamphlet, and this may have
fuelled their belief in Acadian copper mines.293 De Mons and the French government’s
staunch belief in mines, despite having only the unconfirmed reports of Prevert, may
indicate that they were also relying on Hakluyt’s reports of mineral deposits. It is also
possible that the speculation and myth concerning Norumbega as a land of abundance
and wealth similar to El Dorado in the sixteenth century influenced these French and
English belief in mines.294 Yet the only reference to this older concept of Norumbega in
the context of the French and English trade voyages and colonies is given by Champlain
290 Ibid., 214. 291 Champlain, Vol. I, 261,246-7, 374. 292 Richard Hakluyt, “Certaine brriefe testimonies,” in ENEV, 203. 293 DSOD, 55, 460. 294 Richard D’Abate and Victor A. Konrad, “General Introduction,” in Baker ed., American Beginnings,
XXIII-XXVII.
during the exploration of the Penobscot River in 1604, and he considered the wonders of
Norumbega to be a baseless myth295
The official grant to de Mons stating the French belief in Acadian mines would
have been available and known to the English organizers of the dual Virginia Companies.
King Henri had De Mons’ patent published and distributed to warn the many French
merchants involved in the fur trade of the monopoly.296 The Castor and Pollux, a North
American trade venture including a mixture of French and English interests sailed from
Plymouth in 1604 carrying a copy of de Mons’ patent with its reports of Acadian
mines.297 Despite the lack of any tangible evidence to support the existence of mines in
Acadia or northern Virginia, the English and French repeatedly exchanged false reports
of mines. With each exchange the French and English became more certain of these
mineral deposits’ existence, leading to disappointment at Sagadahoc and Port Royal.
Jamestown, Port Royal, and Sagadahoc’s similarities were not only the result of their
common trade voyage heritage, the French and English were well informed on each
others’ activities and utilized the information in each others’ promotional pamphlets and
published documents. These significant connections demonstrate the limitations of using
a nation specific scope in studying the colonization efforts of France and England in the
early seventeenth century.
In the early seventeenth century, personal, political, and economic connections
between France and England facilitated the effective dissemination of information, and
295 Champlain, Vol. I, 300. 296 “Prohibition issued by the King, 1603,” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 221-223; “The Kings Declaration, 1603,”
in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 223-226. 297 Beltran Rrogues and Pedro de Ynarra, “Proceedings in the case of the Castor and Pollux: Declaration of
the armador,” in NAW Vol. 5, 114.
both countries were well aware of the others’ North American activities. France was
crucial as a training ground where young elite Englishmen acquired knowledge of
continental European languages, politics, and culture before taking their places among
the leaders of England.298 Many English merchants lived in the port cities of northern
France and many French merchants resided in London.299
These connections created countless channels for information to flow quickly
between France and England. Richard Hakluyt had spent time in France as part of
England’s embassy and had personnel connections with many Huguenots involved in
France’s North American trade.300 Through these connections Hakluyt acquired and
translated the works of Frenchmen such as Samuel de Champlain.301 Similarly, Chaste
served as ambassador to England in 1602 while involved in France’s North American
trade ventures.302 Detailed information on Jamestown was first published in France early
in 1608 and the French author knew the size of the colony, identified the leaders Newport
and Wingfield by name, and was aware that the colony had returned false gold ore to
England.303 This cycle of information exchange affected the objectives of the French and
English in their North American colonies and encouraged French hopes for a Northwest
Passage through the interior of North America.
During his 1603 voyage to the St. Lawrence Champlain was fixated on finding a
Northwest Passage through the river systems of Canada, and these hopes for a Northwest
298 Games, The Web of Empire, 30. 299 Benjamin, The Atlantic World, 227. 300 Quinn, “Introduction to Richard Hakluyt the Younger’s Discource of Western Planting,” in NAW Vol.3,
70. Hakluyt referred to Stephen Bellinger as his personal friend, see, Hakluyt, “A Discourse Concerning Western Planting,” in NAW Vol. 3, 78.
301 Jonathan L. Hart, Representing the New World: The English and French Uses of the Example of Spain (New York: Palgrave, 2001), 163; DSOD, XII-XIII.
302 Trudel, The Beginnings of New France, 74. 303 “News from Paris, 1608,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 234-5.
Passage influenced the objectives of de Mons and the French in Port Royal. After visiting
Tadoussac in 1603 the French slowly made their way up the St. Lawrence River, and
when strong currents halted their progress Champlain proceeded via canoe with Native
guides.304 Frustrated in his progress, Champlain took great pains throughout the voyage
to collect information from several Natives on the region upriver.305 Based on this Native
information Champlain concluded that the St. Lawrence River led to the South Sea or
Pacific Ocean.306
Champlain was consumed by his search for a Northwest Passage in 1603, and he
transferred these aspirations to Port Royal in 1604. Although Champlain had little power
in Port Royal he was at the forefront of events in the colony and was one of the only
colonists to remain in Acadia for the entire duration of the colony.307 Champlain later
described the context of Port Royal’s foundation:
…to effect a permanent settlement in those lands which we call New France in hopes of attaining more easily to the completion of this enterprise, since the voyage would begin in this land beyond the ocean, along which the search for the desired passage is to be made.308
Champlain saw French North American colonies as way stations to find and exploit the
Northwest Passage. It was partly in hope of finding a Northwest Passage that three
separate coastal voyages set out from St. Croix and Port Royal exploring the coastline to
the south in 1604, 1605, and 1606.309 Champlain was unimpressed by the size of each
304 Champlain, Des Sauvages, in DSOD, 295-297, 311, 313. 305 Ibid., 301, 305, 323. 306 Ibid., 336-7. 307 Champlain, Vol. I, 391. 308 Ibid., 228-229: “à essayer de faire vne demeure arrestee és terres que nous disons la Nouuelle France,
esperans paruenir plus facilement à la perfection de ceste enterprise, la Nauigation commençeant en la terre d'outre l'ocean, le long de laquelle se fait la recherche du passage desire.”
309 Champlain, Vol. I, 280, 284-292, 300.
river he encountered during these voyages, the largest being the Penobscot River which
the French found navigable for only 25 leagues inland.310 The French found no sign of a
Northwest Passage on the coast of Acadia in 1604-1606. In 1608, hopes for a passage to
the South Sea reverted to the St. Lawrence River system. In 1618 Lescarbot still believed
the St. Lawrence River led to the South Sea, and Champlain’s maps of New France
published up to 1632 included a Northwest Passage through the St. Lawrence River.311
The French and English search for a Northwest Passage through the interior of
North America in Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc shared common roots. Edward
Hayes drew on French sources discussing the St. Lawrence to make his argument for the
existence of a Northwest Passage in his 1602 treatise.312 In his 1603 account Champlain
demonstrated a distinct lack of knowledge concerning these earlier French sources used
by Hayes, and Champlain provided only a single inaccurate reference to the voyages of
Cartier in his account.313 Conrad Heidenreich and Janet Ritch argue that Champlain was
aware of the Hayes treatise in 1603, and that Champlain’s search for a Northwest Passage
was driven by these recent English claims of a Northwest Passage.314
Hakluyt translated the work of Champlain including Des Sauvages, and it is
possible that Hakluyt had read and relayed the information in Champlain’s account to the
London Virginia Company before 1607.315 Douglas Hunter argues that references to a
Northwest Passage by John Smith and George Popham indicate that they were aware of
310 Ibid. 311 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 317; Samuel de Champlain, Map of 1632, 1632 [map] in Derek Hayes, Historical
Atlas of Canada: Canada's History Illustrated with Original Maps (Vancouver: Douglas & McIntyre, 2002), 55.
312 Edward Hayes, “A Treatise, 1602,” in ENEV, 177. 313 Champlain, Des Sauvages, in DSOD, 299. 314 DSOD, 55, 460. 315 Ibid., XII-XIII.
and using the information in Des Sauvages, but he overlooks the fact that in his pamphlet
Champlain provides a description of the Northwest Passage that is nearly identical to that
given by Hayes in 1602.316 It is much more likely that Smith and Popham were
referencing the 1602 Hayes treatise, given the pamphlet’s connections to the Virginia
colonization effort. Regardless of the exact context of transmission, the French and
English clearly used each other’s information on the Northwest Passage. The French and
English search for a Northwest Passage was a common goal representing part of a shared
heritage of North American exploration. Champlain supported this shared French and
English heritage when he wrote a miniature history of the search for the Northwest
Passage later in the seventeenth century, including the voyages of French and English
explorers such as Cabot, Cartier, Davis, Frobisher, and Gilbert.317
Cod fishing was another concern of the previous trade voyages which was
transferred to the colony of Port Royal. Seasonal trade voyages to Acadia and New
France had combined cod fishing and the fur trade for decades. In 1591, an English
privateer apprehended a French ship loaded with a cargo of fish, train oil, and furs
returning from the Gulf of St. Lawrence.318 During his third trade voyage to New France
in 1603 Chauvin contracted with Rouen merchants to deliver 100,000 dried fish.319 While
Champlain’s 1603 account does not include any discussion of French fishing during the
Chaste voyage, it likely occurred and merely did not merit mention by Champlain who
focused on geographic features during the expedition.320 De Mons’ and other trade
voyage veterans continued to utilize Acadia’s fishing banks in Port Royal. De Mons did
316 Douglas Hunter, “Was New France born in England?” Beaver 86, 6 (January 2007), 39-44. 317 Champlain, Vol. I, 225-228. 318 Quinn, England and the Discovery of America, 317, 318. 319 Trudel, The Beginnings of New France, 68. 320 Champlain, Des Sauvages, in DSOD, 249-253.
his best to combine fishing with Port Royal’s resupply voyages in order to maximize
profits in 1604-1607, and Lescarbot mentions Port Royal’s main supply ship the Jonas
fishing off Canso.321
Jamestown, Sagadahoc, and Port Royal’s parallel efforts to engage in profitable
fishing were the product of these colonies’ common heritage of North American trade
voyages with their roots in the Newfoundland fishing industry. Newfoundland was the
dominant North American industry for both the French and English in the early
seventeenth century, and this was increasingly the case for England as the privateering
effort against Spain declined and then ended in 1603-4.322 The Newfoundland fishermen
established the northern sea route to North America via the Azores, and this path was
used by the French and English trade voyages and the colonies of Port Royal and
Sagadahoc.323 It was only practical that the longstanding and profitable example of the
Newfoundland fishery would influence the economic objectives of the French and
English in the early seventeenth century during trade voyages and colonization efforts.
The Newfoundland fishery’s influence on these French and English colonies highlights
the common importance of North American activity in forming the parallel economic
objectives of Jamestown, Sagadahoc, and Port Royal.
321 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 305, 350. 322 According to David Quinn in 1579 there were 50 English ships reported yearly at Newfoundland, with
as many as 500 French Ships. There were reported to be approximately 200 English ships at Newfoundland in 1609. Quinn, Explorers and Colonies, 210, Quinn, America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements, 423. For the relative size of the Newfoundland fishery trade see, Peter Pope, Fish into wine: the Newfoundland plantation in the seventeenth century (Chapel Hill, University of North Carolina Press, 2004),13-19.
323 Champlain, Des Sauvages, in DSOD, 251; Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage unto New-England,” in ENEV, 417; Lescarbot, Vol. II, 296; ENEV, 1-2.
Scholars divide French and English colonization based on commodities and
developmental patterns resulting from the regional availability of these commodities.324
Yet, this divide did not initially exist in Jamestown, Sagadahoc, and Port Royal, and
when this economic divide did develop it was not solely the result of the availability of
local commodities. Stephen Hornsby in his book British Atlantic American Frontier
divides the fur and fish based economy of Canada from the agricultural settlement of
British North America.325
Similarly, Thomas Benjamin sees the development of both French and English
colonies as determined by the local economic resources and the material interests of
Europeans.326 Benjamin argues that the French sought furs not agriculture, and sees
English colonization as focused on land and settlement.327 The preceding survey of
French and English economic objectives shows this divide did not exist during the initial
phase of colonization. There were distinctions between French and English objectives,
such as the search for Raleigh’s lost colonists in Jamestown, the English interest in
sassafras, and the larger scale of the French fur trade. The similarities in Jamestown, Port
Royal, and Sagadahoc’s focus on Native trade, fishing, and searches for the Northwest
Passage and mines were the central components of both French and English colonial
objectives. It was only after heavy financial losses resulting from the failure of trade
voyage methods to fund large colonies that the objectives of the French and English
diverged.
324 Benjamin, The Atlantic World, 297-8; Stephen Hornsby and Michael Hermann, British Atlantic, American Frontier: Spaces of Power in Early Modern British America. (Hanover: University of New England, 2005), 2.
325 Hornsby and Hermann, British Atlantic, American Frontier, 2. 326 Benjamin, The Atlantic World, 297-8. 327 Ibid.
After the failure of Port Royal in 1607, de Mons refocused his efforts on the St.
Lawrence, deputizing Champlain to establish a colony upriver at Quebec in 1608.328
Poutrincourt, a former member of de Mons’ company, re-established Port Royal in
1610.329 These French colonies adapted to the economic realities of the fur trade in New
France and Acadia, earning a profit by keeping costs down with limited personnel.330
Quebec had 28 colonists in 1608 and remained small and precariously self-sufficient
financially into the 1630’s.331 The Plymouth men simply abandoned Sagadahoc in 1608.
Ferdinando Gorges and Francis Popham continued seasonal voyages to northern Virginia,
but many of the investors joined the London Company in 1609.332 The London Company
was slow to adapt to the failures and losses in Jamestown, and continued to increase
investment and expand the number of investors before eventually making the shift to
selling land and focusing on tobacco production.333
The divide identified by Hornsby and Benjamin arose only a few years after the
establishment of French and English North American colonies, but it was not an
inevitable divide. Virginia would prove capable of supporting a profitable fur trade
beginning in the 1620’s, as would the New England coast near the site of Sagadahoc.334
The traditional narrative of Jamestown’s transition to agriculture and tobacco often
328 Champlain, Vol. I, 231; Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 124; Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 17. 329 Ibid., 17. 330 W.J. Eccles, The French in North America 1500-1783 (East Lansing: Michigan State University Press,
1998), 21; Quinn, Explorers and Colonies, 143; Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 5, 18; Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 130.
331 Eccles, The French in North America, 21; Quinn, Explorers and Colonies, 143. 332 Gorges, A briefe narration, in ENEV, 346; “The Royal Council for Virginia to Plymouth Corporation,
17 February 1609,” in ENEV, 467. 333 Quinn, Explorers and Colonies, 159; “The Second Virginia Charter, the first to the London Company alone, 23 May 1609,” in NAW Vol.5, 207; Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 277-8. 334 For Discussion of Virginia’s and New England’s fur trade potential see, James D. Rice, Nature and
History in the Potomac Country:From Hunter-Gatherers to the Age of Jefferson (Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 2009), 86-93; Joseph A. Conforti, Saints and Strangers: New England in British North America (Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 2006), 16-17.
overlooks the flourishing fur trade which developed in Virginia after 1624 and lasted
until 1660.335 The choices of colonial leaders, company investors, and colonists’ relations
with local Native groups in the initial stage of colonization were largely responsible for
the divergence of French and English products and methods.
*
French and English Perceptions of the North American Climate and Native Characteristics
The seasonal nature of French trade voyages to Acadia prior to 1604 lead to
misrepresentations of the regions climate, and had a significant impact on the
colonization effort in Port Royal. Positive reports on the climate of Acadia had resulted
from season trade voyages as early as the 1580’s. In 1584 Richard Hakluyt cited a French
captain of Dieppe’s report on the coast of Norumbega between the latitude of 40-47
degrees, who found the area to be fertile, abundant, and lush with fruits.336 Prevert gave
Champlain a similar description of the Acadian coast in 1603 and based on Prevert’s
report Champlain concluded, “The entire land is very beautiful and flat, where there are
all the kinds of trees which we saw going to the first rapids of the great Riviere de
Canadas…”337 These positive reports on the Acadian coast influenced de Mons’ choice to
establish his colony there. The commission from the Lord High Admiral praised the,
“…discovery and colonisation of the coasts and countries of La Cadie, both in view of
335 Rice, Nature and History in the Potomac Country, 86-93; Frank E. Grizzard, and D. Boyd Smith, Jamestown Colony A Political, Social, and Cultural History (Santa Barbara: ABC-CLIO, 2007), 75.
336 Richard Hakluyt, “A Discourse Concerning Western Planting,” in NAW Vol.3, 78:“La terra abondantissima d'omni frtto: vi nascono aranci, mandorle, vua salvatica, et molte altre sorti d'abori odoriferi: la terra e detta da paesani suoi Norumbega”
337 Champlain, Des Sauvages, in DSOD, 359.
the climate, the goodness of the soil, the advantageous situation of the said
province…”338
French views of Acadia’s climate were reinforced by the connections they
perceived between latitude and climate. Acadia was located in the same latitude as
France, and the French assumed the two regions would have relatively similar
climates.339 Firsthand experience contradicted this view to an extent, with Champlain
citing the excessive cold at Tadoussac in 1603, but this same limited experience could
just as easily mislead seasonal visitors.340 Champlain accepted Prevert’s exaggerated
account of the Acadia coast, comparing Prevert’s account to his own positive report on
the region up the St. Lawrence River.341 The French optimistically believed Acadia to be
a plentiful land with a mild climate, but the information provided by seasonal trade
voyages proved to be deceptively incomplete.
Arriving in Acadia in 1604 and scouting the coast, the French choose to settle on
an island in the midst of the St. Croix River on the Western coast of the Bay of Fundy.
The first snowfall occurred in early October and the St. Croix River soon clogged with
ice, making travel nearly impossible.342 All of the colony’s stores except the Spanish
wine froze, the French were unable to travel to the mainland for fuel, and scurvy set in
338 “Commission from Lord High Admiral,” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 217, 493: “...& specialement pour la découverture & habitation des côte & contrées de la Cadie, tant pour la temperature des lieux, bonté des terres, commodité de la situation de ladite province...”
339 Examples of this correlation exist throughout the writings of the French, but tend to decline with firsthand experience. For example in his History of New France, Marc Lescarbot comments that Virginia, referring to the Chesapeake region, is in the latitude of 35-38 degrees, and so must have a good and healthy climate. Lescarbot, Vol. II, 278.
340 Champlain, Des Sauvages, in DSOD, 289. 341 Ibid., 259. 342 Champlain, Vol. I, 302-3.
killing 35 of the 79 colonists.343 Champlain observed that the winter was much colder and
longer than that of France and speculated that it was due to the uncultivated nature of the
land and the northwestern winds.344 Addressing the French miscalculations of Acadia’s
climate Champlain commented, “It was difficult to know this country without having
wintered there; for on arriving in summer everything is very pleasant…”345
The French colonists’ miscalculation of Acadia’s climate was aggravated by the
severity of the winters during the early seventeenth century. The climatic event known as
Little Ice Age produced extreme cold in the early seventeenth century resulting in
October snows and ice in Acadia during 1604.346 The harsh winter of 1604-5 resulted in a
scramble to find a more suitable spot for the colony. The colony relocated to Port Royal
across the Bay of Fundy in the Annapolis Basin in 1605, but de Mons remained
unsatisfied and the coastal voyages in 1605 and 1606 sought a new location further south
in a warmer climate.347 The experience gained during seasonal trade voyages led to a
misunderstanding of Acadia’s climate. This misinformation on Acadia’s climate causing
serious damage to the French colonization effort in 1604-5, and de Mons became
disenchanted with region, questioning its viability for colonization.
Jamestown, Sagadahoc, and Port Royal experienced parallel misunderstandings
of the North American climate based on the inaccurate information provided by seasonal
trade voyages. Much like Jamestown, the French colonists emphasized defence in
choosing St. Croix Island for the site of their colony at the expense of other
343 Ibid., 306, 307, 303-4. 344 Ibid., 302-3. 345 Ibid., 307: “Il estoit mal-aisé de recognoistre ce pays sans y auoir yuerné, car y arriuant en eté tout y est
fort aggreable...” 346 Fagan, The Little Ice Age, 104-5, 151. 347 Ibid., 362, 339-340.
considerations such as the availability of drinking water. In Jamestown the saline
contaminated water near the fort would be a major factor leading to the high death rates
in 1607-9.348 In 1604-5, the French at St. Croix lacked access to wood for fuel or fresh
drinking water due to their island location, attributing to the colony’s heavy casualties.349
The harsh winters of eastern North America caught the colonists at Jamestown,
Sagadahoc, and St. Croix off guard, and led to dissatisfaction and confusion. While the
English abandoned Sagadahoc the French persevered, moving to Port Royal and
contemplating a move to the south along the coast.
The presence of de Mons, the main investor and monopoly holder, in Port Royal
gave the French the ability to quickly respond to the adversity they faced during the
winter of 1604-5. In contrast, the London Company would not learn of the unhealthy
nature of the Jamestown site until the return of the first resupply under Newport in the
spring of 1608, and did not attempt to amend the problem until the third resupply in
1609.350 Even then, the disastrous wreck of the Sea Venture with Jamestown’s new
charter and governor foiled these plans for relocation.351 The French and English held
similar views connecting latitude to climate, and came to similar conclusions on the
environment of North America based on incomplete information gathered in seasonal
trade voyages. The French would also rely on the experiences gained during trade
voyages to formulate their views and policies towards the Native groups of Acadia.
348 George Percy, “A Discourse of the Plantation of the Southern Colonie in Virginia,” in NAW Vol.5, 273; Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 222-3.
349 Champlain, Vol. I, 302-3, 306. 350 For discussion of the London Virginia Company’s 1609 plan for relocation see, James Horn, A Kingdom
Strange The Brief and Tragic History of the Lost Colony of Roanoke (New York: Basic Books, 2010), 220-221, 232.
351 Archer, “A Letter of M. Gabriel Archer, 31 August 1609,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyage, Vol. 2, 280-281.
During the French trade voyage to the St. Lawrence in 1603, Champlain
expressed disdain for Native Americas despite constantly depending on Native
assistance. Champlain’s negative views reflected the dominant views of Native
Americans among the French trade voyage personnel during the early seventeenth
century. During his voyage to the St. Lawrence Champlain had extensive contact with the
Natives of the region, including the Montagnais, during feasts, trading, and while
traveling upriver with the help of Native guides.352 During the French-Montagnais feast
at Tadoussac Champlain described the Montagnais as having a joyful disposition and
observed, “I assure you that there are plenty of them who have good judgment and
respond quite appropriately to whatever one could ask of them.”353 These patronizing
complements implying that the Montagnais are simple and malleable were the only
remotely positive remarks on the Natives of the St. Lawrence in Champlain’s 1603
account.
Throughout his account, Champlain repeatedly referred to the Natives as wicked,
liars, brute beasts in their manner of living, without religion or government, and
insinuates that they practice cannibalism. Discussing the French-Montagnais feast at
Tadoussac, Champlain explained:
They have a wickedness in them, in that they resort to revenge and are great liars, a people whom it is not too good to trust, except within reason and with force at hand.They promise much and perform little. They are, for the most part, a people who have no law...354
352 Champlain, Des Sauvages, 1603, in DSOD, 257-59, 313. 353 Ibid., 271, 272-3: “car je vous asseure qu'il s'en trouve assez qui ont bon judgement, & respondent assez
bien à propos sur ce que l'on leur pourroit demander.” 354 Ibid., 272-3: “Ils ont une meschanceté en eux, qui est, user de vengeance & estre grands menteurs, gens
en qui il ne fait pas trop bon s'asseurer, sinon qu'avec raison & la force à la main; promettent assez & tiennent peu: Ce sont la pluspart' gens qui n'ont point de loy...”
Champlain repeatedly made similar comments attacking the character and behaviour of
the St. Lawrence Natives in his account, later observing, “I believe that they have no law
among them, nor know what it is to worship and pray to God: and they live, for the most
part, like brute beasts.”355 Champlain implied that the Natives of Canada practiced
cannibalism in his account and then explicitly states that the French saved an Iroquoian
woman the Montagnais intended to eat.356 Conrad Heidenreich and Janet Ritch argue that
as the newcomer Champlain was merely repeating the views of the more seasoned French
traders such as Gravé Du Pont regarding the Natives’ characteristics.357 Based on
Heidenreich and Ritch’s interpretation Champlain’s account provides a rough
representation of French views of the Natives of New France among the members of
trade voyages in the early seventeenth century. The French trade voyage personnel
considered the Native of the St. Lawrence treacherous, thievish, and liars without
government or religion, but these negative views were tempered by the need to maintain
friendly relations with Native trade partners.
During his time on the St. Lawrence Champlain would have witnessed the French
dependence on Natives on a nearly daily basis. The primary purpose of the French
voyage in 1603 was to trade for furs, and this basic premise necessitated friendly
cooperation with the Montagnais and other fur trade partners. Champlain personally
relied on Native guides and attempted to travel further upriver by means of a Native
355 Ibid., 280-1:“Voilà pourquoy je croy qu'il n'y a aucune loy parmy eux, ne sçavent que c'est d'adorer & prier Dieu, & vivent la plus part comme bestes brutes...” Similar examples can be found on, 283, 353.
356 “All these people suffer so much sometimes that they are almost forced to eat each other,” (“Tous ces peuples patissent tant quelques-fois qu'ils sont presque contraints de se manger les uns les autres pour les grandes froidures & neiges.”), “We asked them for a woman of the Irocois whom they wanted to eat...” (“Nous leur demandasmes une femme des Irocois qu'ils vouloient manger laquelle ils nous donnerent....”), Champlain, Des Sauvages, in DSOD, 272-3, 362-3.
357 DSOD, 234.
canoe.358 Unable to travel further upriver Champlain relied solely on Native accounts to
determine the geography of the area upriver, and his confirmation of a Northwest Passage
was based entirely on Native information.359 Champlain and the numerous trade voyage
veterans in Port Royal continued to have mixed views of Native Americans based on the
need for cooperative trade and the French belief that Natives were inferior and possessed
a wide range of negative character traits.
English and French interaction with Natives in North America during seasonal
trade voyages produced similarly mixed views of Native Americans. The evidence for
French-Native interaction is limited, but based on Champlain’s account the French had
established friendly relations with the Montagnais for at least two consecutive seasons,
with Gravé returning several Montagnais men willingly taken to France during a previous
voyage.360 The French’s establishment of friendly relations with the Montagnais for a
least two seasons indicated a lack of violence and a high degree of cooperation.
Champlain did not mention any violence or overt hostility between the French and the
various Native they encounters in 1603. This alone separated Champlain’s 1603 account
from every English trade voyage narrative during the early seventeenth century. The
French had a longstanding trade relationship with the Natives of the St. Lawrence and
Acadia, and this allowed for less friction compared to the English’s newly established
trade partnerships in northern and southern Virginia.361
While the French avoided conflict with Native groups during their 1603 trade
voyage the French view of the Natives as treacherous, thievish, and liars all reflected
358 Champlain, Des Sauvages, in DSOD, 313. 359 Ibid., 323-5, 329. 360 Ibid., 255. 361 DSOD, 55, 460.
negative stereotypes with clear parallels in the English sources. Furthermore, the
prevalence of these negative views among the French trade voyage personnel indicates
that despite a lack of violence in Champlain’s account, hostility, conflict, and violence
were a reality during many French trade voyages in the early seventeenth century. These
French views were based on the accumulated experience of Frenchmen such as Gravé
with extensive firsthand experience in French-Native interaction in the late sixteenth and
early seventeenth centuries. The French’s negative views of Native Americans and their
need for close cooperation with Native trade partners influenced French colonization
policy.
Despite their reliance on Native fur trade partners, The French established a
Native policy which combined notions of amiable relations with the desire to subdue and
conquer the Natives of Acadia in 1603. The royal commission to de Mons from King
Henri and the commission from the Lord High Admiral both demonstrated the French
government’s desire for the conquest of the Natives of Acadia. The commission from
King Henri opened with a strong statement emphasizing France’s intention to convert the
Natives of Acadia.362 This conversion had a more insidious component as the
commission went on to command de Mons to, “…subject, submit, and render obedient
thereto all the tribes of this land, and those adjacent…” and if diplomacy failed, “to make
open war upon them to constrain and bring them to such terms as you shall judge
necessary…the establishment, maintenance, and preservation of our authority among
them.”363 De Mons’ Royal commission exhibited hopes for the peaceful conversion and
362 “The King’s Commission to Monsieur de Monts,” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 212-3.
submission of the Acadian Natives, but was set on achieving French control of the region
and did not shy away from the prospect of using force against Natives.
De Mons’ commission from the Lord High Admiral demonstrated similarly
mixed views of how Native relations were expected to develop in Acadia. The
commission highlights the goal of civilizing and Christianizing the Natives through,
“intercourse with the French for the gain of their commerce…” but also makes it clear
that the Natives are to submit to the authority of the French King.364 The French
determination to convert the Natives of Acadia, even by peaceful means, is itself a
declaration of French disdain for the Natives, their culture, and religion. The Royal
commission described the Natives of Acadia as without religion based on the reports of,
“the ship-captains, pilots, merchants, and others who for many years have visited,
frequented, and trafficked with the various tribes of these parts…”365 French views of
Native Americans and their objectives in French-Native relations were the result of trade
voyage experiences and advice given by trade voyage veterans. These mixed expectations
363 Ibid., 212-13, 490-1: “Et en icelle étendre & faire conoitre nótre nom, puissance & authorité. Et à icelle assujettir, submettre & faire obeïr tous les peuples de ladite terre, les appeller, faire instruire, provoquer & émouvoir à la conissance de Dieu, & à la lumiere de la Foy & religion Chrétienne, la y établir : & en l'exercice & profession d'icelle maintenir garder & conserver lesdites peuples, & tous autres habituez esdits lieux...Entretenir, garder & soigneusement observer les traittés & alliances dont vous convi drés avec eux : pourveu qu'ils y satisfacent de leur part. Et à ce defaut, leur faire guerre ouverte pour les contraindre & amener à telle raison que vous jugerez necessaire pour l'honneur, obeïssance & service de Dieu, & l'etablissement, manutention & conservation de nótredite authorité parmi eux.”
364 “Commission from Lord High Admiral,” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 217, 493: “à découvrir quelques Cótes & terres lointaines dépourveuës de peuples ou habitées par gen encor Sauvages, Barbares, & dénuez de toute religion, loix & civilité, pour s'y loger & fortifer, & tacher d'en amener les nations à quelque profession de la Foy Chrétienne, civilization de mœurs, reglement de leur vie, pratique & intelligence avec les François pour la découverture & habitation des Côte & contrées de la Cadie.”
365 “The King’s Commission to Monsieur de Monts,” in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 211-212, 490: “...de present gens barbares, athées, sans foy ne religion, au Christianisme, & enla creance & profession de Nôtre foy & religion : & les retirer de l'ignorance & infidelité où ilz sont. Ayans aussi dés long temps reconusur le rapport de Capitaines de navires, pilotes, marchans & autres qui de longue main ont hanté, frequenté & traffiqué avec ce qui se trouve de peuples ésdits lieux...”
for French-Native relations were not restricted to the French government and extended to
the men in Port Royal. Champlain commented on the French objectives in 1604 stating:
In course of time we hoped to pacify them, and to put an end to the wars which they wage against one another, in order that in the future we might derive services from them, and convert them to the Christian faith.366
While the French planned to support their colony based on the long established trade in
furs with the Natives of Acadia and New France the colonists also intended to establish
French authority in the region, and over the Native inhabitants. The information and
personal experience gained in French trade voyages was used to develop the French
government’s Native policies and the Port Royal colonists’ mixed views of Native
Americans.
Similar experiences with Native Americans in the context of seasonal trade
voyages led to the formation of the initial policies used by de Mons’ company and the
dual Virginia Companies. Port Royal, Jamestown and Sagadahoc’s original plans for
Native trade required the colonists to cooperate with and even depend upon Native trade
partners and guides. Yet, the French and English designed the colonies of Port Royal,
Jamestown, and Sagadahoc to claim territory, and all three colonies included an element
of domination that was not present in the previous seasonal trade voyages. The French
and English were prepared to use force against Europeans and Natives alike in their
attempts to claim and profit from North American territory. There were differences
between the initial Native policies of each colony, but similar trade objectives and
negative views of Natives American groups overshadowed these minor differences. Of
366 Champlain, Vol. I, 272: “Lesquels auec le temps on esperoit pacifier, & amortir les guerres qu’ils ont les vns contre les autres, pour en tirer à l’aduenir du seruice : & les reduire à la foy Chresti ne.”
course, the instructions and charters of these three colonies reflected their past
experiences and future expectations, not the reality of events in the colonies. Native
characteristics and the personal agency of colonists and Natives would shape Native-
colonist relations as much as these expectations and previous experiences, which will be
discussed in the next chapter.
*
The Limitations of National Unity in French and English North American Colonization
Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc were all government chartered colonies
operating on the behalf of their monarchs, but these national associations existed
alongside the regional and individual character of the privately owned joint stock
companies which operated these colonies. While King James and King Henri hoped to
expand their territories and supported national unity in England and France, de Mons’
trade company and the London and Plymouth Virginia Companies represented regional
interests and sought personal profits. The French and English were diverse groups, and in
using the imperfect terms French and English scholars must acknowledge the many
connections between and divisions within France and England in the early seventeenth
century.
Many scholars studying sixteenth and seventeenth-century colonization work
within a national framework that emphasizes the differences between the French and
English.367 The prominence of scholarly works specifically discussing either French or
English colonization and seeking to determine what traits were uniquely French or
English in the seventeenth century demonstrates this national divide.368 In her book
Ceremonies of Possession, Patricia Seed argues for a sharp division between the nascent
Western European nations and their colonization efforts. Seed claims that a vast gap
existed between the culture, language, and intellectual ideas of nations such as France
and England, producing completely different perceptions of the criteria for legitimately
claiming American land.369 Seed characterizes English claims as focused on building
houses, gardens, and fences to signify and justify territorial possession.370 In the case of
the French claims to territorial possession, Seed assert they needed the affection and
consent of local Natives, and used ceremonial processions combined with the planting of
markers such as crosses.371
This cultural divide between French and English colonists is widely cited by
scholars such as Alfred Cave, Gordon Sayre, Conrad Heidenreich, Janet Ritch, and the
nineteenth-century historian Francis Parkman to explain the differences in English and
French relations with Native American groups.372 While France and England were two
distinct political entities in the early seventeenth century the connections and competition
367 The main divides are cultural, demonstrated by Patricia Seed’s work, economic objectives, seen in Hornsby and Benjamin’s works, and Native relations which will be addressed in the third chapter. Benjamin, The Atlantic World, 297-8; Hornsby and Hermann, British Atlantic, American Frontier, 2; Patricia Seed, Ceremonies of Possession in Europe's Conquest of the New World, 1492-1640 (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1995).
368 For recent examples of this national division see, Chaplin, “The British Atlantic,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 219-235; Marzagalli, “The French Atlantic World in the Seventeenth and Eighteenth Centuries,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 235-252; Trevor Burnard, “The British Atlantic.” in Greene and Morgan eds., Atlantic History: A Critical Appraisal, (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2009), 111-137; Laurent Dubois, “The French Atlantic,” in Greene and Morgan eds., Atlantic History: A Critical Appraisal, 137-162.
369 Seed, Ceremonies of Possession, 11-13. 370 Ibid., 17-18, 21-3, 26-29. 371 Ibid., 42, 46-7, 56, 59, 61-2. 372 DSOD, XVII-XIX. Sayre, Les “Sauvages americains,” 57-8; Cave, “Why Was the Sagadahoc Colony
Abandoned?” 639, Parkman, The Jesuits in North America in the Seventeenth Century, 44. Also see, Chapter One footnotes, 61, 65.
between French and English North American activity were of central importance in both
groups’ decisions to establish permanent colonies and helped to shaping the similar
methods and objectives of Jamestown, Port Royal, and Sagadahoc. In seeking to overturn
a scholarship that generalizes in terms of Europeans, scholars such as Patricia Seed have
shifted to generalizations in terms of nationality.
In the late sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries France and England were
both composite monarchies with considerable linguistic, cultural, and religious diversity.
Under Queen Elizabeth I, England was part of a composite monarchy consisting of
England, the Principality of Wales, and the Kingdom of Ireland.373 In 1604 this
composite monarchy was expanded to include Scotland, and England accepted a Scottish
king, James I.374 In addition, England was religiously diverse with a considerable
Catholic minority.375 France was also a recently united composite monarchy. Many
regions of France including Brittany, Normandy, and the Basque Kingdom of Navarre
possessed semi-autonomous governments.376 This regionalism is further highlighted by
the existence of inter-provincial custom duties in France charged on de Mons’ furs in
1605.377
French and English are useful terms in distinguishing distinct written languages
used for promotional accounts and various documents in the early seventeenth century,
but these written languages did not correspond to unified spoken languages. Marc
373 Elliott, Empires of the Atlantic World, 117. 374 Ibid., 117-118. 375 Despite ongoing religious hostility and reoccurring bouts of oppression, England practiced a limited
degree of religious tolerance under Queen Elizabeth and King James. See, Carla G. Pestana, “Religion,” in David Armitage and Michael Braddick eds., The British Atlantic World, 1500-1800 (New York: Palgrave Macmillan, 2009), 71-2.
376 Quinn, Explorers and Colonies, 128; Chavez, John R. Chavez, Beyond Nations: Evolving Homelands in the North Atlantic World, 1400-2000 (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2009), 103-5.
377 “King Henri to Rouen,” 1605, in Lescarbot, Vol. II, 224-5.
Lescarbot, a member of the Port Royal colony and afterwards a renowned author and
historian, commented on the linguistic diversity of France declaring, “yea in one and the
selfsame province languages differ...the people of Lower Brittany, the Gascon, and the
Basque do not agree.”378 Similar English linguistic divides existed between Wales,
northern England, and southern England.379
Many scholars depict the French and English as possessing a greater degree of
linguistic and cultural unity than actually existed in the early seventeenth century.380 This
perceived uniformity is the inevitable result of scholars using documents written in the
official French and English languages. These published documents necessarily promoted
national unity in the names of their monarchs. The vast majority of surviving sources
discussing England’s North American ventures in the late sixteenth and early seventeenth
centuries were compiled and edited by Richard Hakluyt the younger and Samuel Purchas
who tailored these documents to fit their literary standards and their common aim of
promoting English nationalism.381 This could result in major alterations, such as
Hakluyt’s removal of Catholic sentiment and references from James Rosier’s 1605
account of the Waymouth voyage.382 In the early seventeenth century, neither England
nor France constituted coherent nations, but were kingdoms united by loyalty to
monarchies rather than a common language, culture, or religion. These monarchies
378 Lescarbot, Vol. III, 113, 364: “Voire en vne méme province il y a langage different, non plus ne moins qu'és Gaulles le Flamen, le bas Breton, le Gascon, le Basque, ne s'accordent point.”
379 David B. Quinn, “Englishmen and Others,” in David B. Quinn, European Approaches to North America, 1450-1640 (Brookfield: Ashgate, 1998), 145; Karen O. Kupperman, “The Early Modern Atlatnic World,” An NYU Silver Dialogue (April 2012), 2.
380 Seed, Ceremonies of Possession, 6-8; DSOD, XVII-XIX.; Gordon Sayre, , 13; Chaplin, “The British Atlantic,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 220-224, Marzagalli, “The French Atlantic World in the Seventeenth and Eighteenth Centuries,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 239-240.
381 ENEV, 30-31, 40, 43-44, 48. 382 James Rosier was the representative of the Catholic Sir Arundell on the Waymouth voyage and became
a Jesuit priest shortly after his voyage to Virginia. Ibid., 62-64.
depended on the cooperation of semi-independent local elites to maintain their power,
and most individuals’ interests and concerns were regional rather than national.383
French and English are useful terms within the context of comparative
colonization, distinguishing groups united by their loyalty to common monarchs and their
involvement in national colonization efforts. Individuals involved in North American
colonization referred to themselves and others using the terms French and English in the
context of national competitive. These reductive national categories coexisted with
contemporary knowledge of the divisions within the French and English. In his work The
Principle Navigations, Richard Hakluyt acknowledged the diversity and divisions within
France declaring:
...conducted English ships so farre within this gulfe of S. Laurence, and haue brought vs true relation of the manifold gaine which the French, Britaynes, Baskes, and Biskaines do yerely returne from the sayd partes;”384
While Hakluyt acknowledged the divisions within France he sought to present the
English as a unified group. Seventeenth-century authors used national terms or regional
identifiers depending on whether or not they wished to stress unity or divisions. Thus,
Samuel de Champlain often used the terms French and English, but referred to the free
traders who opposed de Mons’ monopoly as Basque and Breton merchants, highlighting
their divisions with de Mons’ royally chartered company.385
383 Michael Braddick, "Civility and Authority,” in Armitage and Braddick eds., The British Atlantic World, 93-4.
384 Richard Hakluyt and Edmund Goldsmid,The Principal Navigations, Voyages, Traffiques & Discoveries of the English Nation Made by Sea or Over-Land to the Remote and Farthest Distant Quarters of the Earth at Any Time Within the Compasse of the 1600 Yeeres. Volume XIII (Edinburg, E & G Godsmid, 1889), 59.
385 Champlain, Vol. I,230.
It is difficult to determine how French and English individuals involved in
colonization would have identified themselves beyond the assumed loyalty to their
monarchs. In their accounts Champlain and Lescarbot nearly always identified French
individuals by their city or province of residence.386 The Mi’kmaq of Acadia called the
Port Royal colonists Normans demonstrating the prominence of regional associations
among seasonal fur traders prior to colonization and possibly reflecting the Port Royal
colonists’ strong connections to Rouen in Normandy.387
This regional identification is less prominent in English sources relating to
Jamestown and Sagadahoc, and this was the result of the regional division between the
Plymouth and London Companies. The Jamestown colonists were overwhelmingly from
the eastern counties of England, and many of these colonists were either relatives or
otherwise connected through previous associations.388 Similarly, Sagadahoc consisted of
colonists from the west of England and was dominated by the relatives and associates of
the Pophams and Gilberts.389 The French use of regional identification in Port Royal was
a result of de Mons’ sole monopoly and the involvement of a diverse group of French
colonists from across northern France, and the English found the use of such regional
identification largely unnecessary in Jamestown and Sagadahoc due to the common
regional origins of the leading colonists and many of the rank and file colonists as well.
Regionalism led to divisions in France and England marked by opposition and
competition over the granting of monopolies for trade and colonization.
386 Ibid., 239, 261, 276, 310, 366, 375, 390, 463; Lescarbot, Vol. II, 229, 301, 310, 350. 387 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 348-9. 388 Horn, A Land As God Made It, 34-40; Grizzard, and Smith, Jamestown Colony, 234; Map of England
showing the places of Origin of a number of the first Jamestown colonists [map], in William M. Kelso, Jamestown, the Buried Truth (Charlottesville: University of Virginia Press, 2006), 19.
389 ENEV, 76, 376-7.
The French cities of Saint-Malo and Rouen were intense competitors in the North
American fur trade during the early seventeenth century. The monopolies granted by
King Henri to Chauvin and Chaste were based in Rouen, and La Roche declared Gravé, a
former Saint-Malo resident, a traitor when he joined Chauvin’s monopoly based out of
Rouen.390 Many independent merchants who had a long history of trading for furs in New
France continuously opposed the monopolies granted by Henri IV to Chauvin, Chaste,
and de Mons. It was due to the protests of these free traders that Henri revoked de Mons’
monopoly in 1606-7.391
The hotbed of this opposition was the port city of Saint-Malo in Brittany which
claimed the right of first discovery in New France thought the Malouin explorer Jacques
Cartier.392 The 1613 factum of the merchants of Saint-Malo argued that the discoveries
and claims of Norman and Breton fishermen, Jacques Cartier, and the English sponsored
voyage of Sebastian Cabot all superseded the claims of de Mons’ monopoly.393 Many of
these free trade merchants violated the monopoly granted to de Mons, and continued to
trade in New France and Acadia defying the decrees of the King.394 Against the interests
of their king and country, these monopoly breakers went so far as to ally with Dutch
trading interests in violating the monopoly from 1604-1607.395 The fierce regional trade
rivalries in France and the Saint-Malo merchants’ opposition to colonization
390 Trudel, The Beginnings of New France, 66. 391 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 351. 392 “Extract from the Decrees of the Council of State,” in DSOD, 207; “Factum of the Merchants of Saint-
Malo,” in DSOD, 199-201. 393 Ibid., 199-201. 394 Champlain, Vol. I, 239, 276-7; Lescarbot, Vol. II, 350-1. 395 Biggar, The Early Trading Companies of New France, 63.
demonstrates the limits of French unity and the dominance of regional interests over the
government’s attempts to establish national colonies.396
This regionalism has parallels in England where Exeter and Bristol opposed the
leading role of Plymouth in forming the West Country division of the Virginia Company.
Exeter declined to invest in the Plymouth Virginia Company, and only a third of Bristol’s
merchants invested for a combined total of less than 600 pounds.397 At the same time the
Plymouth Company was vehemently opposed to the idea of a London based Royal
Council, and made numerous protests to the Earl of Salisbury, even threatening to
withdraw from the Virginia venture entirely.398 The simple fact that two separate Virginia
Companies were established shows the divisions between the West Country and London
interests. The English colonization effort was affected by internal divisions, competition
between regions, and even rivalries between cities within regions.
The French colony of Port Royal established in Acadian in 1604 had strong
connections to the previous trade voyages through an extensive overlap in personnel.
Previous trade voyage experiences influenced Port Royal’s economic objectives
including the fur trade, the search for mines and a Northwest Passage to the south sea,
and fishing. These economic objectives had a substantial overlap with the English
colonies of Jamestown and Sagadahoc. The French and English had similar trade voyage
experiences and exchanged information in promotional literature and published
396 Naomi Griffiths discusses the Catholic and Protestant rivalries which also existed both within and between the French port cities, but this divide did not strictly apply to de Mons’ company which included members of both religious groups. Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 30-31.
397 “Exeter City Chamber refuses to participate in the voyage, March 1606,” in ENEV, 379; “Bristol Common Council opens subscriptions for the north Virginia venture, April 1606,” in ENEV, 381-383.
398 Walter Mathewe, “Walter Mathewe, for Plymouth Corporation, to earl of Salisbury, May 1606,” in ENEV, 384; Ferdinando Gorges, “Sir Ferdinando Gorges to the earl of Salibury, May 1606,” in ENEV, 388-9.
documents, resulting in these shared colonial objectives. The seasonal trade voyages also
influenced Port Royal by helping to shape French perceptions of Acadia’s climate and
Native Americans. The French misunderstood the climate of Acadia to their determent,
and developed a negative view of Native Americans, a view that coexisted with a need to
cooperate with Native trade partners and guides. The connections between French and
English colonization efforts in the early seventeenth century do not conform to the
national divides that have shaped many scholars interpretive frameworks. France and
England were distinct countries, and the colonies of Port Royal, Jamestown, and
Sagadahoc were all separate ventures with different personnel, locations, and leadership.
Yet, the similarities and connections between these colonies are striking, and are a
necessary part of understanding the development of early English and French North
American colonization.
Scholars often associate the establishment of Jamestown in 1607 with the
eventual foundations of the United States. Many works on Jamestown possess titles
stressing the connections between the colony and the future United States such as James
Horn’s A Land as God Made It: Jamestown and the Birth of America, and Alexander
Brown’s, The Genesis of the United States.399 This nationalistic perspective has led many
scholars in the United States and Canada to focus on colonization efforts occurring within
their modern nations’ geographic boundaries. Thus, Jamestown is extensively studied in
the United States, and Quebec has occupied a similar position in Canada. This national
focus has led scholars to neglect both Sagadahoc and Port Royal, and privileges those
399 Alexander Brown, The Genesis of the United States; A Narrative of the Movement in England, 1605-1616, Which Resulted in the Plantation of North America by Englishmen, Disclosing the Contest between England and Spain for the Possession of the Soil Now Occupied by the United States of America (New York: Russell & Russell, 1964).
settlements that survive. James Axtell, W.J. Eccles, and Ian Steele give limited attention
to Port Royal, seeing it as little more than a prelude to the colony of Quebec which they
associate with the foundation of Canada.400 This national perspective has had the
unfortunate effect of creating artificial divides in the events of the seventeenth century
colonies. To understand the context and events in the colonies of Jamestown, Sagadahoc,
and Port Royal a transnational and comparative perspective is necessary.
The scholarship often focuses on nations and national divides during the
seventeenth century. This seventeenth-century nationalistic perspective can create a strict
division between English, French, and Native Americans while simultaneous overstating
the unity within each group. English, French, and Native American are often necessary
labels indicating broad geographic and political associations, but scholars often overlook
how these terms have severe limitations when applied to the late sixteenth and early
seventeenth centuries. The scholarship has constructed a division between the Native
relations of English and French North American colonies on the basis of European, rather
than Native American, cultural differences. Many scholars view the French as developing
cooperative relations with Natives through their cultural flexibility and acceptance of
Native American culture. On the other hand, scholars view English colonists as
developing hostile and violent relations with Native Americans resulting in reoccurring
conflicts.
The next chapter with address these larger French and English trends in Native
relations within the context of Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc. While these
400 Eccles, The French in North America 1500, 15-6; James Axtell, The Invasion Within: The Contest of Cultures in Colonial North America (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1986), 34-5; Steele, Warpaths, 61-63.
patterns of French and English Native relations did emerge in the seventeenth century,
they represent a break with similar hopes for Native trade in French and English trade
voyages and for the colonies of Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc. Many scholars
argue that differing French and English cultures and objectives resulted in divergent
Native relations, but this is not supported by the similarities in French and English
methods and objectives in these early seventeenth century colonies.401 The scholarship
has understudied the divisions which existed in the experiences, cultures, and societies of
Native groups encountered by the French and English in North America. The major
divisions between Native groups such as the Mi’kmaq in Acadia and the Powhatans in
the Chesapeake dwarf the divisions between the French and English colonization efforts.
Native characteristics and actions were a major factor in the development of Native-
colonist relations in Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc, and had an impact of the
larger development of French and English North American colonies in the seventeenth
century.
See, foontnotes 77,78,81,87, and adjoining discussion in Chapter One.
CHAPTER 4: THE ROLE OF PORT ROYAL, JAMESTOWN, AND SAGADAHOC IN THE DEVELOPMENT OF FRENCH AND ENGLISH SEVENTEENTH-CENTURY
NORTH AMERICAN NATIVE RELATIONS
Distinct forms of French and English Native relations sprang from the common
heritage of North American trade voyages. Rather than viewing the divide in French and
English Native relations as a new development in the seventeenth-century, many scholars
maintain that this was an inherent divide resulting from the cultures and formative
experiences of the French and English.402 During the seventeenth century the various
English North American colonies would develop similarly negative Native relations
defined by hostility and violence. The French North American colonies would establish
essentially cooperative Native relations based on trade alliances throughout the
seventeenth century. While many scholars emphasize the divisions between European
nations involved in American colonization, the French and English colonization efforts in
Jamestown, Port Royal, and Sagadahoc shared similar goals and methods that were the
result of interconnected North American trade traditions. The French and English also
possessed similar views of Native Americas that blended the necessity for cooperation
and trade with distrust, hostility, and feelings of cultural superiority over Natives. In Port
Royal and Sagadahoc these French and English commonalities led to similar trade
alliances with the Mi’kmaq, Maliseet, and Eastern Abenaki. The colonists of Port Royal,
Sagadahoc, and their Native trade patterns were able to overcome hostility and
misunderstandings to maintain peaceful relations. This view of Native relations in Port
Royal and Sagadahoc contradicts the established interpretation of poor Native relations in
Sagadahoc and the overly positive interpretation of Native relations in Port Royal.
DSOD, XVII-XIX; Seed, Ceremonies of Possession, 11-13. Also See, historiography discussion on pages 19-21 of Chapter One.
From the perspective of French and English North American trade voyages the
events within the colony of Jamestown presented a break with past precedents. Unlike
Port Royal and Sagadahoc, Jamestown’s relations with the Powhatans of the southern
Chesapeake were distinguished by persistent animosity and reoccurring violence. The
scholarship has sought to explain the English-Powhatan conflict using the military
background of the Jamestown colonists, but the Port Royal and Sagadahoc colonists
possessed similar military experience and maintained Native trade alliances. The Port
Royal colonists’ conflict with the Natives of Cape Cod, referred to as the Armouchiquois,
during coastal voyages in 1605 and 1606 sheds light on the conflict between the English
and Powhatans. The culture, societies, and past experiences of the agricultural Powhatans
and Armouchiquois varied drastically from the hunter-gather Mi’kmaq, Eastern Abenaki,
and Maliseet. The French and English experienced conflicts with the Armouchiquois and
Powhatans, but were capable of establishing cooperative trade alliances with the
Mi’kmaq, Maliseet, and Eastern Abenaki. In Jamestown, Port Royal, and Sagadahoc
Native characteristics and actions played a central role in determining colonist-Native
relations, and helped to shape the divergent development of English and French North
American colonization.
*
The Misrepresentation of Native Relations in Sagadahoc and Port Royal
Port Royal has come to represent the French ability to peacefully coexist with
Native groups, while the recent scholarship considers Sagadahoc an example of the
English tendency to use violence and establish poor Native relations. This division
reflects the long-term trajectory of English and French relations with Natives in North
America during the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries, but this division is being
projected backwards onto the colonies of Sagadahoc and Port Royal. French and English
relations with Native Americans in Sagadahoc and Port Royal consisted of a similar
combination of cooperation, trade, hostility, and violence that did not strictly conform to
the larger seventeenth-century pattern. The many scholars’ division of French and
English North American colonization based on the culture and formative experiences of
these groups is called into question by Port Royal’s and Sagadahoc’s similar Native
relations.
The negative depictions of Sagadahoc originate with the seventeenth-century
Puritan historian William Hubbard and the late eighteenth-century Maine historian James
Sullivan. Sullivan reported that the English at Sagadahoc committed brutalities such as
firing a cannon as it was being moved by a group of Eastern Abenaki.403 In Hubbard’s
account of Sagadahoc the Natives turned on the English for their brutality and assaulted
the colonists in their fort.404 Both accounts are rife with factual errors, and Sullivan
misidentified various personnel and investors, and is unclear on the date of the colony.405
Despite the deficits of Hubbard and Sullivan’s work, they were reiterated in 1875 by John
Abbot, and recent works such as D.W. Rice’s biography of Sir John Popham give these
403 James Sullivan, "A Topographical Description of Georgetown," in Massachusetts Historical Society Collections, 1st ser. 1 (1792), 251.
404 William Hubbard, The History of the Indian Wars in New England: From the First Settlement to the Termination of the War With King Philip, in 1677 (Baltimore: Genealogical Publishing Company, 2002), 251-2.
405 Alfred A. Cave, “Why Was the Sagadahoc Colony Abandoned? An Evaluation of the Evidence,” The New England Quarterly, Vol. 68, 4 (Dec., 1995), 630; James Sullivan, The History of the District of Maine (Boston: I Thomas and E.T. Andrews, 1795), 52, 169.
tales consideration.406 The historical sources that survive contradict Hubbard and
Sullivan’s accounts.
When the Plymouth Virginia Company evacuated Sagadahoc in 1608 the
colonists and investors sought to justify their failure. They provided a wide range of
excuses including the death of the Plymouth Company’s main supporter Chief Justice
Popham, the lack of precious metals, Raleigh Gilbert’s decision to return to England, and
the bitter cold of the region’s winter.407 With this strong desire to rationalize the colony’s
failure the Sagadahoc colonists and investors would have had no qualms about vilifying
and blaming the local Eastern Abenaki natives. The Jamestown colonists attempted to
place much of the blame for Jamestown’s continued failures from 1607-1624 on the local
Natives, yet the Sagadahoc colonists did not blame the Eastern Abenaki. This fact alone
largely proves that there was no substantial conflict between the English and the Eastern
Abenaki.
In his 1658 memoirs Ferdinando Gorges reflected on the civil nature of the Native
captives Nahanda and Skidwarres during their time in England as well as their close
cooperation with the English in Sagadahoc.408 Similarly, in 1616 John Smith praised the
Eastern Abenaki sagamore Nahanda who remained a staunch English ally and helped
facilitate trade between Smith and the Eastern Abenaki.409 Despite the existence of
contradictory evidence, modern scholars still accept negative accounts of English-Eastern
406 Douglas W. Rice, The Life and Achievements of Sir John Popham, 1531-1607: Leading to the Establishment of the First English Colony in New England. (Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 2005), 256-7.
407 Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania,” in ENEV, 415; Ferdinando Gorges, A briefe narration, in ENEV 345-6.
408 Gorges, A briefe narration, in ENEV, 344-5. 409 Smith, “A Description of New England,” in Horn. Captain John Smith, 161.
Abenaki relations at Sagadahoc due to their desire to fit Sagadahoc into the larger
seventeenth-century trend of English-Native relations in North America. 410
James Axtell applies this larger seventeenth-century pattern of English-Native
conflict to English relations with the Eastern Abenaki in Sagadahoc. Discussing the
English trade voyage of George Waymouth preceding Sagadahoc, Axtell is keen to
highlight every instance of English-Eastern Abenaki violence and hostility while glossing
over the prevalence of cooperation and peaceful trade.411 Axtell continues to interpret
every meeting between the English and Eastern Abenaki in Sagadahoc as hostile, and
assumes that the sagamore of the Pemiquid band Nahanda saw the English colony as an
intrusion.412 Nahanda and Skidwarres, another member of the Pemiquid band, were
captured by George Waymouth in 1605 and lived in England before being returned to
northern Virginia in 1606 and 1607.413 Axtell interprets this previous capture and
captivity as a clear indication that Nahanda and Skidwarres resented and distrusted the
English. Axtell argues that Nahanda and Skidwarres actively sought to sabotage the
English attempts to establish a fur trade using a statement by Ferdinando Gorges in a
letter to the Earl of Salisbury in February of 1608:
Whose Conuersations, & familiarity they haue most frequented, which is on of the cheefest reasons, wee haue to hope in time, to gayne that which presently cannot bee had, they shew themselues exceedingly subtill and conninge, concealing from vs the places, wheare they haue the commodityes wee seeke for, and if they finde
410 Parkman, The Jesuits in North America in the Seventeenth Century, 44; Greene, Pursuits of Happiness, 12-14; Perdue and Green. The Columbia Guide to American Indians of the Southeast, 54; Chaplin, “The British Atlantic,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 223-4; Jean-Frédéric Shaub, “Violence in the Atlantic: Sixteenth and Seventeenth Centuries,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 118.
411 Axtell, “The Exploration of Norumbega: Native Perspectives,” in Baker ed., American Beginnings,158-161.
412 Ibid.,164. Sagamore was the Eastern Abenaki word for leader, captain, or chief, ENEV, 93. 413 Gorges, A briefe narration, in ENEV, 340, Davis; “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV, 426-7.
any, that hath promised to bringe vs to it, those that came out of England instantly carry them away, and will not suffer them to com neere vs any more.414
Gorges letter focused on excusing the colony’s failures, and it was written after the return
of the Gifte of God carrying a number of the Sagadahoc settlers and reporting a bitter
winter without profit.
There is a high degree of ambiguity in this passage, and it is not entirely clear to
whom Gorges was referring. David and Alison Quinn interpret Gorges’ statement as
meaning that the Sagadahoc colonists’ factional behaviour led to the Eastern Abenaki’s
cooperating with one group of colonists against their rivals in the colony.415 Earlier in the
letter Gorges blamed the colonists for disgracing each other through infighting, and his
statement was primarily intended to blame the colonists, specifically Raleigh Gilbert
whom Gorges disliked, for the failures of the colony.416 Axtell’s argument that Gorges’
quote indicates English-Eastern Abenaki hostility is only one possible interpretation and
the quotation’s meaning is ultimately inconclusive. Axtell seeks to give Nahanda and the
Eastern Abenaki agency through their resistance to English colonization, but Axtell
oversimplifies the context of English-Eastern Abenaki interaction and is implicitly
focused on the larger English pattern of hostility and violence against Native Americans.
It is likely that Nahanda and Skidwarres resented the English for their captivity in
1605, but it seems that Nahanda and the other captives were realistic about their situation
and cooperated with the English for their own gain. Discussing the five Eastern Abenaki
captives aboard Waymouth’s ship in 1605 Rosier claimed:
414 Ibid., 164; Ferdinando Gorges, “Letter to the earl of Salisbury, reporting the return of the Gifte of God, 7 February 1608,” in ENEV, 456. This interpretation of Nahanda and Skidwarres attitude towards the English is also accepted by Alfred Cave, Cave, “Why Was the Sagadahoc Colony Abandoned?” 636-7.
415 ENEV, 456. 416 Gorges, “Letter to the earl of Salisbury,” in ENEV, 455.
First, although at the time when we surprised them, they made their best resistance, not knowing our purpose , nor what we were, nor how we meant to vse them; yet after perceiuing by their kinde vsage we intended them no harme, they haue neuver since seemed discontented with vs, but very tractable, louing...417
While Rosier had every reason to provide a positive perspective on the English capture of
the Eastern Abenaki the captives had more to gain through cooperation than resistance. In
England Nahanda and the other Eastern Abenaki captives provided an extensive
description of their country which was later published by Samuel Purchas.418 The Eastern
Abenaki captives’ practical cooperation continued after their return to northern Virginia.
The Sagadahoc colony was located over ten miles from Nahanda’s band on the Pemiquid
River, and did not present a substantial threat or inconvenience to the Eastern Abenaki.
On the other hand, the Sagadahoc colony presented enticing benefits to the Pemiquid
band specifically and the Eastern Abenaki generally.
Nahanda and the Pemiquid band’s knowledge of the English language, culture,
and their personal connections to the English colonists allowed them to act as interpreters
and intermediates. Axtell argues that Nahanda and Skidwarres actively sought to inhibit
English trade, when they had everything to gain from facilitating English-Eastern
Abenaki trade. Nahanda came to Sagadahoc after the English had established their
colony. During this meeting Nahanda promised to guide the English to Bashabes the
regional leader of the Eastern Abenaki located on Penobscot River.419 This would allow
the Pemiquid to gain power and prestige through their ability to facilitate trade and
communication between Bashabes and the English. After this plan failed due to
417 James Rosier, “A Trve Relation,” in ENEV, 302. 418 Gorges, A briefe narration, in ENEV, 340-1; “Eastern Abenaki captives describe their country of
Mawooshen,” in ENEV, 470-6. 419 Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV, 439; Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia
Britania,” in ENEV, 408.
navigational difficulties, Nahanda returned to Sagadahoc with a representative of
Bashabes and reaffirmed his desire to facilitate a meeting with Bashabes.420 Sagadahoc’s
fragmented record does not reveal whether or not this meeting occurred, but commenting
on the events in the colony William Strachey observed Raleigh Gilbert made many
discoveries of the surrounding rivers and traded for many furs.421
An unrecorded meeting between the English and Bashabes in the spring of 1608
likely occurred, given the English and Eastern Abenaki desire for such a meeting.
Axtell’s interpretation of Native hostility to the English ignores this immediate context,
and focuses on the future patterns of English violence, domination, and the displacement
of Natives. The Eastern Abenaki and Sagadahoc colonists were utterly unaware of this
outcome. In 1607 the English colony of roughly a hundred men dependant on Native
cooperation and trade appeared to the Eastern Abenaki as a trade opportunity rather than
a dangerous territorial incursion.
Sagadahoc would have provided the Eastern Abenaki with direct access to
European goods. Until this time the Eastern Abenaki had largely depended on Mi’kmaq
middlemen for European goods.422 The Mi’kmaq of Acadia were enemies of Bashabes
and the Eastern Abenaki under his nominal leadership.423 The Eastern Abenaki had a
strong interest in finding an alternative source of European trade goods to end their
dependence on the Mi’kmaq. Beginning in 1604 the Eastern Abenaki began trading with
420 Ibid., 413. 421 Ibid., 414. Alfred Cave discounts this statement by Strachey, arguing that due to the colony’s economic
failure the English could not have traded for any considerable number of furs. Yet as discussed in chapter three, even a considerable fur trade would have proven insufficient to maintain a colony the size of Sagadahoc or Port Royal, Cave, “Why Was the Sagadahoc Colony Abandoned?” 638.
422 Bruce J. Bourque and Ruth H. Whitehead, “Trade and alliances in the contact period,” in Baker ed., American Beginnings, 132, 138-9.
423 Champlain, Vol. I, 299, 451.
the French during their southbound voyages from Port Royal.424 Yet, the French and
Mi’kmaq cooperated closely and trade between the Eastern Abenaki and the French was
facilitated by Mi’kmaq interpreters and their Maliseet allies.425 The timely arrival of the
English in 1607, just as the French allies of the Mi’kmaq were evacuating their colony of
Port Royal, presented an important economic and diplomatic opportunity to the Eastern
Abenaki under Bashabes.426 The shared English and Eastern Abenaki desire for trade was
the best guarantee for cooperation and peaceful relations. Many scholars focus on the
English missteps in their attempts to trade with the Eastern Abenaki as the cause of
hostility between the two groups, but this view fails to consider the divisions within the
Eastern Abenaki and the Sagadahoc colonists’ role in these intra-Native rivalries.
The most commonly cited example used to demonstrate the English lack of skills
at Native trade and their general hostility to the Eastern Abenaki is Raleigh Gilbert’s
trade voyage up the Kennebec River, as recorded by William Strachey.427 The Eastern
Abenaki sagamore Sabenoa initiated a meeting with Gilbert and presented trade goods
including tobacco and small skins. Gilbert displayed English trade goods in turn, but
finding the Native goods of little value he departed without any exchange.428 This refusal
to trade sparked a struggle in which Sabenoa’s men stopped the English from departing
and reportedly extinguished their fire brand to deny the English the use of their
firearms.429 The encounter ended in a tense standoff, but no one was injured on either
424 Ibid., 294-6. 425 Ibid., 294. 426 Daniel B Thorp, “Equals of the King: The Balance of Power in Early Acadia,” Acadiensis, 25, 2 (Spring
1996), 10-12. 427 Cave, “Why Was the Sagadahoc Colony Abandoned?” 636, 639. 428 Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania,” in ENEV, 410-11. 429 Ibid., 411-12.
side.430 While Gilbert’s actions were certainly responsible for causing this standoff, his
behaviour did not represent English ineptitude or a general hostility between the English
and Eastern Abenaki.
Sabenoa had previously been at war with Nahanda and the Pemiquid band as the
Davies Journal declares, “...they had ben att war with Sasanoa & had slain his Soone in
fight skidwares and Dehanada wear in this fyght.”431 Gilbert and the English were aware
of the divides among the Eastern Abenaki. While they were interested in maintaining
good relations with the Pemiquid band and the powerful sagamore Bashabes, the English
had little interest in wasting trade goods on establishing relations with Sabenoa’s band.
Gilbert’s hostility to Sabenoa represented the strength of the English-Pemiquid alliance,
and English economic pragmatism when dealing with Native groups they did not have an
immediate interest in allying or trading with.
The reports of hostility between the Eastern Abenaki and the English at
Sagadahoc were specific to Sabenoa and those groups on the Kennebec River who were
associated with Sabenoa. When the Jesuit Father Biard received reports of English-
Eastern Abenaki hostility and violence in 1611 his source was the sagamore
Meteourmite. Meteourmite reported that when Raleigh Gilbert replaced George Popham
as President he mistreated the Eastern Abenaki, which led to violence and several
deaths.432 While even Father Biard found Meteourmite’s story suspect, it is important to
note that Meteourmite was a sagamore on the Kennebec River not far from Sabenoa’s
430 Ibid., 412. 431 Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV,433. 432 Father Biard stated that the Eastern Abenaki wanted to flatter and trade with the French after a chaotic
scramble following the French arrival nearly resulted in conflict, Biard, “Letter from Father Pierre Biard to the Reverend Father Provincial, at Paris,” in Carayon,
, 68-70.
village.433 It is believed that Sabenoa was seeking to build his power base on the
Kennebec in 1607-8, and he is reported to have declared himself the lord of the Kennebec
River to the English.434 Meteourmite would have been an ally of Sabenoa and evidently
shared his distaste for Raleigh Gilbert.
While Meteourmite’s claim that the Eastern Abenaki killed eleven Englishmen
was blantantly false, certain aspects of his claims ring true. The 1616 version of Father
Biard’s encounter with Meteourmite omitted the English slaughter, but mentioned the
English setting their dogs on the Eastern Abenaki.435 The use of mastiffs to terrorize
Natives was noted in the account of Martin Pring’s 1603 voyage to northern Virginia, and
this tactic was utilized in Jamestown as well.436 There was clearly hostility and perhaps
some violence between the English and the Eastern Abenaki allied with Sabenoa. The
knowable extent of this hostility and violence is limited by their complete lack of mention
in English sources, which were open about the standoff with Sabenoa in 1607 and had no
clear motivation to hide English-Eastern Abenaki conflicts. Despite the predominance of
negative depictions of English-Eastern Abenaki relations in Sagadahoc, the record
demonstrates a mixed relationship that varied from group to group based on
circumstance.
433 Ibid., 68-70; “Eastern Abenaki captives describe their country of Mawooshen,” in ENEV, 473. 434 Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV, 433; Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia
Britania,” in ENEV, 409. 435 Pierre Biard, “Relation of New France,” in Reuben Gold Thwaites, The Jesuit Relations and Allied
Documents Travels and Explorations of the Jesuit Missionaries in New France 1610—1791,Volume 3 (Cleveland: The Burrows Brothers, 1898), 221-2.
436 Martin Pring’s men set their two mastiffs on the Natives of northern Virginia, and the Powhatans’ targeted and killed English dogs in Jamestown impling a similar use of dogs there. “Martin Pring’s Voyage,” in ENEV, 221, 227; Archer, “A relation of the Discovery of our River,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 96.
The colonists in Sagadahoc established a peaceful and cooperative relationship
with the Pemaquid band of the Eastern Abenaki, as well as those groups that interacted
with the English through the cultural intermediaries Nahanda and Skidwarres. When the
Sagadahoc colonists first arrived in north Virginia they visited Pemiquid, where
Skidwarres was successful at re-establishing peaceful contact with Nahanda who had
been returned in 1606.437 In September, as the Sagadahoc colonists were constructing
their fort, Nahanda visited with a group of 40 Pemiquid Eastern Abenaki that included
women and children.438 The English feasted Nahanda’s band and several Englishmen
including Raleigh Gilbert spent the night camping across the river with Nahanda’s
band.439 The presence of women and children in Nahanda’s visiting group, and the
English Captain’s willingness to sleep among the Pemiquid band demonstrates an
extremely high degree of trust between the English and the Pemiquid. This peaceful
cooperation stands in contrast to the larger seventeenth-century interpretation of English-
Native conflict and testifies to the importance of linguistic and cultural interpreters such
as Nahanda and Skidwarres.
William Strachey reported a second visit by Nahanda along with his wife, the
brother or representative of Bashabes, and another sagamore named Amenquin.440 In
stark contrast to the encounter between Gilbert and Sabenoa, during this meeting the
English adhered to the Native customs of hospitality and gift giving. The Eastern
Abenaki sagamores were feasted by President Popham, and gifts were given to Bashabes’
437 Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV, 427-8; Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania,” in ENEV, 404,
438 Ibid., 408; Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV, 438. 439 Ibid., 438. 440 Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania,” in ENEV,413.
brother along with gifts intended for Bashabes and his wife.441 Nahanda profited as well,
receiving gifts of copper beads and knives, which were reported to have greatly contented
him.442 Scholars have oversimplified the nature of English-Eastern Abenaki relations in
Sagadahoc as predominately negative due to their foreknowledge of English-Native
relations throughout the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries. Sagadahoc closely
resembled the English trade voyages to Northern America with their mixture of
cooperation, trade, hostility, and occasional violence between the English and Natives. In
stark contrast to the negative interpretations of Native relations in Sagadahoc, scholars
have generally depicted Port Royal as the quintessential French colony establishing
cooperative and peaceful Native relations with the Mi’kmaq and other Native groups.
Scholars project the larger cooperative trajectory of French-Native relations in the
seventeenth century onto the colony of Port Royal, often contrasting these benevolent
relations with what they assume to be the uneasy tension between Natives and
Englishmen.443 The positive depiction of French-Mi’kmaq relations at Port Royal
overlooks the existence of hostility between the two groups and the explicit French belief
in their own cultural and political superiority over the Natives of Acadia. Discussing the
various Native groups of New France and Acadia, Champlain observed:
All these peoples of Norumbega are very swarthy, and are clothed in beaverskins and other furs like the Canadian Indians and the Souriquois; and they have the same manner of living. 444
441 Ibid. 442 Ibid. 443 Reid, “Political definitions : creating Maine and Acadia,” in Baker ed., American Beginnings, 176,
Sayre, Les “Sauvages americains,” 57-8; Sayre, ,13; Cave, “Why Was the Sagadahoc Colony Abandoned?” 639; DSOD, XVII-XIX.
Champlain’s generalization concerning the Algonquians of Acadia and the St. Lawrence
region was dismissive, and shows an opacity towards Native Americans which was
present in his account of the St. Lawrence in 1603. While Champlain lived, sailed, and
even fought beside the Mi’kmaq and Maliseet throughout his three year stay in Acadia he
never displayed any close camaraderie with these trade partners in his account of the
colony. Champlain continued to generalize about the Natives of Acadia, describing these
various groups as a people few in number who lived a miserable life as nomadic
hunters.445 Writing after the establishment of Quebec, Champlain observed that the
Natives living in the interior of New France were civil compared to the intractable
Natives of the Acadian coast.446 Champlain simply viewed the relationship with the
Acadian Natives as a practical alliance. The French were fully capable of the hostility and
brutality generally reserved for scholars’ descriptions of English colonists when they
lacked sufficient motivation to maintain good relations.
The Port Royal colonists had two recorded clashes with the agriculturalists living
south of the Kennebec River, called Armouchiquois by the French and Mi’kmaq. 447 In
both instances the French showed themselves to be violent and blunt in their dealings
with Native groups outside of their established trade partners in Acadia. The first conflict
occurred during a trade and exploration voyage to Nauset Harbour in 1605 led by de
Mons. During a French visit to the shore an Armouchiquois man stole a French kettle and
a skirmish ensued in which the French fired on the Armouchiquois and a French sailor
444 Champlain, Vol. I, 298: “Tous ces peoples de Norembegue sont fort basannez, habillez de peaux de castors & autres fourrures, c me les sauuages Cannadiens & Souriquois: & ont mesme façon de viure.” Champlain used the term Etchemins to describe both the Eastern Abenaki and Maliseet, and the term Sourquois refers to the Mi’kmaq.
445 Ibid., 308. 446 Ibid., 232. 447 The term Armouchiquois was provided by Mi’kmaq and Maliseet guides, Ibid., 325.
was killed.448 Champlain’s description of the conflict is followed by a discourse on the
Native’s lack of religion or government, and the need to always be on your guard among
Natives.449 This single occurrence provides more direct evidence of hostility and conflict
with Native groups than exists in the entire record of the Sagadahoc colony,
demonstrating scholars’ untenable and historiographically entrenched contrast between
French and English Native relations in these two colonies.
The second conflict between the French and Armouchiquois occurred in the fall
of 1606 at Stage Harbour, during a French voyage commanded by Poutrincourt. Despite
the previous conflict the French stopped to trade for corn and other foodstuffs among the
Armouchiquois.450 Lescarbot reported that Poutrincourt put on a marshal display before
the Armouchiquois in Stage Harbour with swords and muskets.451 Again the French were
unable to maintain peaceful trade with the Armouchiquois and Lescarbot reported that the
French fired on the Armouchiquois twice for theft.452 Predictably given the overt hostility
and violence of the French, the Armouchiquois attacked and killed four Frenchmen who
had stayed onshore overnight to bake biscuits.453 Stranded in the harbour due to contrary
winds, Poutrincourt and the French escalated the conflict. The French decided to retaliate
by taking a number of Armouchiquois captive to perform the arduous task of grinding
corn with a hand mill at Port Royal.454 Luring a number of Armouchiquois in with trade
goods, the French attempted to take captives by choking the Armouchiquois with
448 The primary source for this event is Champlain, Lescarbot confirms this event briefly but it occurred before his arrival in Acadia. Ibid., 353-4; Lescarbot, Vol. II, 277.
449 Champlain, Vol. I,354, 356-7. 450 Ibid., 398. Stage Harbour is located on the east coast of Cape Cod. 451 Lescarbot, Vol. II,332. 452 Ibid., 333. 453 Ibid., 333-4; Champlain, Vol. I, 420. 454 Ibid., 427.
cords.455 The plan failed, but the French succeeded in hacking six of seven
Armouchiquois to pieces.456
Champlain’s account mentions an additional landing by the French, who were
simply seeking revenge at this point.457 After this battle the French made their way back
to Port Royal with four or five wounded and as many dead.458 The viciousness of the
French under Poutrincourt is a stunning demonstration of the French capability for
conflict with Native Americas. This single incident directly contradicts Heidenreich,
Ritch, Sayre, and Cave’s interpretation of French cultural adaptability contrasted with the
English reliance on coercion in Native relations.
In some cases the long established model of seventeenth-century French-Native
cooperation has led scholars of French colonization to ignore the existence of French
hostility and violence with Native groups both in Port Royal and within the larger record
of French-Native interaction. In his history of New France Marcel Trudel refers to
Poutrincourt’s conflict with the Armouchiquois as a surprise Native attack, omitting the
French martial display and their attacks against the Armouchiquois for theft prior to the
Native retaliation.459
The French conflicts with the Armouchiquois did not interfere with their trade
alliance with the Mi’kmaq and Maliseet. Prior to the second conflict at Stage Harbour a
Maliseet emissary to the Armouchiquois made his intentions to wage war on the
455 Ibid., 428 456 Lescarbot, Vol. II,338. 457 Champlain, Vol. I, 429-30. 458 Ibid., 431. 459 Trudel, The Beginnings of New France,87-90; Trudel, Histoire De La Nouvelle-France, Vol. II, 59-61.
Armouchiquois clear to the French.460 The Maliseet Secodun took part in the fight against
the Armouchiquois and is reported to have taken several scalps.461 The French at Port
Royal were capable both of maintaining cooperative alliances with Natives and of
committing brutal violence against Native when the circumstance required it.
While the French at Port Royal maintained peaceful relations with the Mi’kmaq
and Maliseet of Acadia these relations were not without hostility. Many scholars laud the
close relations between Membertou’s Mi’kmaq and the French as the cornerstone of
peaceful French-Mi’kmaq relations which would persist throughout the seventeenth
century.462 In many ways this was certainly true, but these relations were not without
hostility. Champlain gave almost no attention to the Mi’kmaq in his account, and when
he mentioned Membertou he comments that while he was a French ally he had a bad
reputation among the Mi’kmaq for his treachery.463 In his account of Port Royal
Lescarbot was openly suspicious of Membertou and claimed that his close association
with the French was for his own protection and ends.464 During the year Marc Lescarbot
spent in Port Royal he had close contact with Membertou and the Mi’kmaq while
overseeing Port Royal during Poutrincourt’s voyage south in 1606.465 Despite his close
contact with the Mi’kmaq, Lescarbot thought little of them and compared the French
sharing their bread with the Mi’kmaq to the alms given to the poor in France.466
460 Ibid., 395-6. 461 Ibid., 436. 462 Eccles, The French in North America, 16; Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 13; Jones, Gentlemen
and Jesuits, 39. 463 Champlain, Vol. I, 384. 464 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 355. 465 Ibid., 319. 466 Ibid., 331.
Lescarbot’s account also contains more substantial evidence of overt hostility
between the French and Acadian Natives in 1607 prior to the colony’s evacuation.
Lescarbot reported that the Maliseet sagamore Chkoudun warned the French that
Membertou was plotting to betray the French, and rather than disregard this rumour
Lescarbot became increasingly suspicious of the Mi’kmaq and Maliseet prior to the
colony’s evacuation in 1607.467 Soon after Lescarbot stated that the French fur trader
Chevalier was concerned that the Maliseet might attack the French when they visited the
St. John River.468 The tensions between the French and Maliseet escalated to open threats
as a Maliseet shaman foresaw that in two years time “...either they must kill all the
Normans, or the Normans them.”469 Lescarbot reported that he and the other Frenchmen
responded by laughing at the shaman and threatened to put all the Natives to sack,
essentially threatening the Maliseet with war.470 After this unpleasant exchange the
French visited the island of St. Croix, where Lescarbot began to express open hostility
towards the Mi’kmaq and Maliseet. Lescarbot commented that there were large numbers
of Mi’kmaq and Maliseet in the woods, including Membertou, with evil intentions
towards the French.471 Far more hostility existed between the French and their Native
trade partners than the scholarship generally acknowledges.
In the late sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries the French and English drew
on accounts of Spanish cruelty against Natives and their slaughter of Huguenot colonists
in Florida to create a “black legend” intended to undermine Spain’s claims to American
467 Ibid., 355. 468 Ibid., 357. 469 Ibid., 357: “Se Voyant éconduit il dit que devant qu'il fût deux ans il faudroit qu'ilz tuassent tous les
Normans, ou que les Normans les tuassent. Nous-nous mocquames de lui, & lui dimes que nous allions mettre nótre barque devant leur Fort pour les aller tous saccager.”
470 Ibid., 357. 471 Ibid., 358.
territory.472 Yet, within the surviving records of Port Royal, Sagadahoc, and Jamestown
Lescarbot alone attempted to justify colonization based on the colonists’ humane
treatment of the Acadia Natives and claimed the Natives’ willingly accepted French
rule.473 Lescarbot’s attempts to justify French colonization coexisted with his personal
suspicions of Mi’kmaq and Maliseet treachery and his descriptions of the French-
Armouchiquois conflict.474 Englishmen openly acknowledged their maltreatment of
Natives in published works, and John Smith described the torture of Powhatans on his
orders as well as his use of child hostages.475 The black legend of Spanish cruelty did not
cause the French and English to depict themselves as benevolent in their treatment of
Natives in Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc, but instead these colonists vilified
Natives as treacherous and wicked to justify occurrences of colonist-Native conflict.
Despite the existence of hostility between the French and Mi’kmaq, the French
depended on and valued their Native neighbours as trade partners, guides, and
interpreters. As soon as the French arrived at La Have on the east coast of Acadia they
met the Mi’kmaq led by Messamouet.476 The Mi’kmaq of La Have immediately began to
act as guides for the French, and continued to cooperate with the French as guides and
interpreters throughout the existence of de Mons’ colony.477 A number of exploration and
trade voyages were sent out from Port Royal between 1604 and 1607. Guides such as
472 Eric Griffin, “The Spector of Spain in John Smith’s Colonial Writing,” in Appelbaum and Sweet eds., Envisioning an English Empire; Boucher, “Revisioning the ‘French Atlantic,” in Mancall ed., The Atlantic World and Virginia, 292.
473 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 344; Peter Cook, “Kings, Captains, and Kin: French Views of Native American Political Cultures in the Sixteenth and Seventeenth Centuries,” in in Mancall ed., The Atlantic World and Virginia, 335-337.
474 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 355-8,332-4. 475 Smith, A True Relation, in Horn. Captain John Smith, 32-33; Smith, “The Proceedings,” in NAW Vol.
5, 321. 476 Champlain, Vol. I, 237. 477 Ibid., 238.
Messamouet and Secodun, a Maliseet from the St. John River with close ties to the
Mi’kmaq, were indispensible throughout these voyages. Many Mi’kmaq and Maliseet
spoke a trade pidgin developed through extended contact with Basque and Norman
fishermen and traders.478 This trade pidgin facilitated Mi’kmaq-French cooperation, and
allowed guides such as Messamouet and Secodun to act as interpreters between the
French and other Native groups.
In 1604 de Mons charged Champlain with the exploration of the coast to the south
of St. Croix.479 With twelve sailors and two Native guides Champlain explored and
mapped the coast in a small bark as far south as the Kennebec River.480 During this
voyage Champlain met and traded with the Eastern Abenaki sagamore Bashabes,
communicating through Messamouet and Secodun.481 Coastal trade and exploration
voyages by Champlain in 1604, de Mons in 1605, and Poutrincourt in 1606 all included
Mi’kmaq and Maliseet guides who were indispensible as interpreters. These guides were
also important as navigators.
The Mi’kmaq were experienced traders and often utilized European shallops for
longer trade voyages south.482 The coast of Acadia was rocky and treacherous, and the
experience of Mi’kmaq guides was important in facilitating French voyages. The French
and English at Port Royal and Sagadahoc often had great difficulty navigating the coast
without Native help. Raleigh Gilbert was unable to locate the Penobscot River in 1607
478 Ibid., 294; Lescarbot, Vol. II, 348; Bourque and Whitehead, “Trade and alliances in the contact period,” in Baker ed. American Beginnings, 132-3.
479 Champlain, Vol. I, 280. 480 Ibid. 280,300. 481 Ibid., 294. 482 Bourque and Whitehead, “Trade and alliances in the contact period,” in Baker ed. American
Beginnings,138-9. See, footnote 70.
without the help of Nahanda and Skidwarres.483 In 1606 Gravé and Champlain set out
from Port Royal in a pinnace only to wreck on a rocky shore nearby. Luckily Secodun
and a group of Maliseet arrived to help unload the wrecked pinnace and transport the
French back to Port Royal.484 The French were dependant on the Mi’kmaq and Maliseet,
and necessity required the French to overcome those tensions which arose with their
Native allies.
The colonists in Port Royal and Sagadahoc had a keen interest in Native trade,
and ultimately the French were no more accepting of Native culture than the English.
French-Native cooperation and English-Native conflict became established patterns in
North America, but rather than representing an inherent difference between the French
and English this divide had to be developed in the early seventeenth century and
ultimately represents an oversimplification of complex and diverse Native-colonist
relations. The cooperative Native relations established in Port Royal would
fundamentally shape the development of French North American colonization. Port
Royal was re-established by Poutrincourt and other Frenchmen with experience in de
Mons’ colony, and the French-Mi’kmaq trade alliance established in 1604-1607 would
continue to be the crux of French activity in Acadia.485 Similarly, de Mons and
Champlain’s experiences in Acadia would shape the Native relations developed in early
Quebec.486 Sagadahoc represents the English ability and desire to establish colonies based
on Native trade similar to Port Royal and Quebec, but the colony was a failure.
Sagadahoc helped to shape English-Native relations along the coast of modern day
483 Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV, 439; Strachey, “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania,” in ENEV,439.
484 Champlain, Vol. I, 381. 485 Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 17. 486 Champlain, Vol. I, 231; Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 17; Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 124.
Maine, but would not greatly influence English North American colonization. It was in
Jamestown that the patterns which would characterize the seventeenth-century English
approach to North American colonization and Native relations would first develop.
*
Conflict in Jamestown: the Limits of European Experience and Agency
The Jamestown colonists possessed economic objectives and trade experiences
similar to the colonists in Port Royal and Sagadahoc. The 1607 expedition of Christopher
Newport and Gabriel Archer up the James River established friendly relations with
numerous Powhatan villages, demonstrating the influence of English trade experience
and the colonists’ desire for cooperative Native trade. Yet, like Port Royal and
Sagadahoc, Jamestown possessed a strong military component and many of the colonists
in these colonies were military veterans of recent European wars. Military men such as
Edward Wingfield in Jamestown and Poutrincourt in Port Royal had difficulty
cooperating with Natives and relied on their military experience and excessive force over
cooperation and compromise. Ultimately the pattern of English-Powhatan conflict in
Jamestown cannot be explained by the English colonists’ formative experiences and
objectives alone. Consideration of Native societies, cultures, and actions is necessary to
explain the divergent Native relations in Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc.
In their early interactions with the Powhatans the Jamestown colonists exhibited a
desire for trade and cooperation similar to the Sagadahoc and Port Royal colonists.
Christopher Newport and Gabriel Archer led an exploration party up the James River in
May of 1607. Newport was in command and Archer acted as secretary, recording the
region’s resources and commenting on the character of the Powhatans.487 This English
expedition received hospitality from a number of local werowances, most notably at the
town of Arrohateck.488 Archer described how the English were treated with courtesy in
each place they visited as they traded with the towns along the river.489 The general tone
of mistrust and hostility that is prevalent throughout most early English accounts of the
Powhatans in Jamestown was notably absent from Archer’s account.490 Archer remained
comparatively positive about the Powhatans even after the assault on Jamestown in May
of 1607, believing many of the Native groups encountered on the James River were
English allies in opposition to the hostile Powhatans.491
During Newport’s expedition several Natives acted as guides for the English and
were allowed to sleep onboard without suspicion of treachery.492 Archer noted the
trustworthiness and genuine friendship of their primary guide Naviran, who continued to
be an ally of the English even as Jamestown was under attack by the Paspahegh and
several other Powhatan towns.493 During this expedition, the English and Powhatans’
mutual desire to establish trade relations resulted in cooperation, mirroring the
relationships established between the French and Mi’kmaq at Port Royal and the English
and Pemiquid band of Eastern Abenaki at Sagadahoc. Newport and Archer’s cooperation
487 Archer, “The Description of the now discovered River,” in NAW Vol.5, 274-6. 488 Archer, “A relation of the Discovery of our River,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 83-4,
88, 90. Werowances were hereditary leaders or chiefs usually controlling a village under the paramount chief Powhatan. The term included a religious connotation similar to a priest or shaman, and is reported to have roughly translated to he or she is wealthy, Helen C. Rountree, The Powhatan Indians of Virginia: Their Traditional Culture (Norman: University of Oklahoma Press, 1989), 103, 142; Martin D. Gallivan, James River Chiefdoms: The Rise of Social Inequality in the Chesapeake (Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 2003), 169, 24-26.
489 Archer, “A relation of the Discovery of our River,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 83. 490 Ibid., 84, 97, For an account with the standard hostility to the Powhatans covering same time frame as
Archer see, Percy, “A Discourse of the Plantation,” in NAW Vol.5, 270-1. 491 Archer, “A relation of the Discovery of our River,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 97. 492 Ibid., 86. 493 Ibid., 86, 97.
with potential Native trade partners was partly the result of their immediate goals, but
Newport and Archer’s use of compromise and restraint was also facilitated by their
previous trade voyage experiences.
Gabriel Archer possessed considerable trade voyage experience which influenced
English conduct during their expedition up the James River and demonstrates the
parallels between Newport’s expedition and previous English trade voyages. During his
1602 trade voyage Gabriel Archer had extensive interaction with coastal Native groups
on a daily basis for several months as the English explored and traded along the coast.494
Throughout their reoccurring visits the English and Natives traded, shared communal
meals, and several Natives stayed with the English to assist them in harvesting
sassafras.495 During this trade voyage Archer witnessed the Native customs of gift
exchange and reciprocal hospitality, and experienced peaceful trade and cooperation
which he would utilize in Jamestown.
Relations between the Natives of north Virginia and the English were not perfect
during the 1602 voyage, but despite misunderstandings and tensions the English and
Natives were successful in maintaining peaceful relations. When a Native took an
English round shield during a meeting the problem was resolved and the Native sachem
had the shield returned.496 Another instance of Native theft occurred soon after when a
Native man staying the night with the English took several hooks.497 Archer discounted
494 Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV, 128-30. 495 Ibid., 135; John Brereton, “A BRIEFE AND TRVE RELATION,” in ENEV, 157. 496 Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV, 135. Sachem was the southern New
England Algonquin equivalent of the title sagamore, see, ENEV, 93-4. 497 Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV, 135-6.
the event, claiming that the Native man had no malicious intent in the act.498 Archer must
have seen the parallels both real and perceived between the Natives of north Virginia and
the Powhatans during Newport’s voyage up the James River in 1607.
Captain Newport and the Native werowances quickly and peacefully resolved
those misunderstandings that did rise between the English and Powhatans on the
expedition up the James River. When a bullet-bag went missing the werowance of
Arrohateck quickly had it restored, and Newport in turn allowed the Arrohatecks to keep
most of the goods they had taken.499 On another occasion, Newport had an English sailor
bound to a tree and beaten with a cudgel before the werowance of Arrohateck because
Newport believed the sailor had struck a Native man.500 The werowance of Arrohateck
interceded, and in turn he and several others ran down the Native man they believed to
actually be at fault, beating him in a demonstration of reciprocal justice to ensure good
relations with the English.501 In contrast to the hostility, mistrust, and violence which
came to characterize English-Powhatan relations at Jamestown, during this expedition the
English and Powhatans went to great lengths to maintain friendly relations. Newport was
set to march inland past the fall line of the James River, but he determined that the
werowance of Arrohateck, and another werowance, whom the English incorrectly
believed to be the paramount chief Powhatan, disliked the idea. Newport called off the
march judging good relations with the Powhatans to be more important than exploring
Virginia’s interior.502 Instead the English relied on the Powhatans’ knowledge of the
interior which Archer collected by questioning the Powhatans and having them draw him
498 Ibid., 136. 499 Archer, “A relation of the Discovery of our River,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 87. 500 Ibid., 90. 501 Ibid., 90. 502 Ibid., 88.
maps.503 The Jamestown colonists, like the Port Royal and Sagadahoc colonists, were
capable of peaceful interaction and cooperation with Natives. There was no distinct
national divide in the behaviour of these French and English colonists during their
interaction with Native groups.
James Horn identifies the hospitality and friendly interaction with the Powhatans
of the James River as a ruse to keep Newport busy while the Powhatan launched an
assault on the English down river at Jamestown.504 Yet, during the siege of Jamestown,
following the initial assault, the Arrohateck met the English on friendly terms, suggesting
that the English cut down the tall grass used by the Paspahegh and other hostile
Powhatans for ambushes.505 The local werowances under the paramount chief Powhatan
had a great deal of personal freedom within the largely non-coercive political association
of the Powhatan Chiefdom.506 It is just as likely that the Newport expedition was an
authentic example of peaceful interaction between the English and Powhatans. The
peaceful interaction and trade during Newport’s expedition was the result of the
Powhatans’ actions as much as the English’s. Yet, as was the case in the French conflict
with the Armouchiquois and the English conflict with the Kennebec Eastern Abenaki, it
was often Europeans’ trade misconduct and their violent responses to Native theft that
soured relations with Native groups and resulted in violence.
Christopher Newport’s conciliatory and restrained method of Native relations
during the 1607 expedition can be explained by his extensive trade voyage experience
503 Ibid., 82-3. 504 Horn, A Land As God Made It: Jamestown and the Birth of America, 52 505 Archer, “A relation of the Discovery of our River,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 97. 506 Rountree, and Turner, Before and After Jamestown, 122; Gallivan, James River Chiefdoms, 2.
gained as a privateer captain in the Spanish West Indies.507 English privateer voyages to
the West Indies often involved trade with other privateers, Natives, and Spanish settlers.
As part of a privateer fleet in 1590 Newport traded with Caribs and cooperated with
Spanish defectors while raiding Spanish shipping.508 Similarly, George Percy described
how the Jamestown fleet of 1607 traded knives, beads, and hatchets for food, tobacco,
and cloth with Natives while island hopping their way through the West Indies.509 All
Jamestown colonists acquired this West Indies experience during the outbound voyage to
Virginia until the innovation of the direct route in 1609. Yet, Newport was continuously
involved in West Indies voyages for nearly two decades prior to 1607, and his experience
dwarfed the one or two months spent in the West Indies by most colonists.510 A prime
example of the complexity of Newport and other Jamestown colonists’ privateer
experience is provided by the joint French and English privateer, trade, and exploration
voyage of the Castor and Pollux in 1604.
The Castor and Pollux set out from Plymouth and made its way to Trinidad where
the crew traded for tobacco, then stopped in Punta De Rey where they traded for salt.511
Traveling north the Castor and Pollux looted a Spanish caravel, scavenged a substantial
amount of wine from a shipwreck, and then sold these goods at the English, French, and
507 Allen Bryant Nichols, Captain Christopher Newport: Admiral of Virginia (Newport News: Sea Venture, 2007), 30.
508 John White, “Narrative of the 1590 Voyage,” in Horn. Captain John Smith, 906-910. Nichols, Captain Christopher Newport, 23-4.
509 Percy, “A Discourse of the Plantation,” in NAW Vol.5, 267. 510 White, “Narrative of the 1590 Voyage,” in Horn. Captain John Smith, 906-910, Nichols, Captain
Christopher Newport, 30. For the direct route to Virginia pioneered by Samuel Archer in 1609 see, Archer, “A Letter of M. Gabriel Archer, 31 August 1609,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. 2, 281.
511 Beltran Rrogues and Pedro de Ynarra, “Proceedings in the case of the Castor and Pollux: Declaration of the armador, April 1605,” in NAW Vol. 5, 113-114.
Dutch privateer mart of Hispaniola.512 The Castor and Pollux then engaged in more
substantial privateering against two Spanish ships before heading to the Florida coast to
trade for sassafras and china root with local Natives.513 Unfortunately for the crew of the
Caster and Pollux, their voyage ended when a battle with Spanish authorities resulted in
their capture and interrogation.514
The Castor and Pollux represented general characteristics of privateer voyages
applicable to Newport’s numerous West Indian commands. Newport’s interaction with
diverse groups, both violent and friendly, during West Indian voyages taught him the
importance of compromise and the need for restraint among military men. Like Archer
and those with experience in north Virginia, Newport was familiar with peaceful trade
and cooperation with Native groups, as well as hostility and conflict against the Spanish.
Despite the trade experience of colonists such as Newport and Archer, Jamestown’s
relations with the Powhatans were dominated by reoccurring brutality and violence on a
scale that was absent in Sagadahoc and Port Royal.
The conflict between the Powhatans and English was partly caused by the
Jamestown colonists’ experience in the bloody military training grounds of European.515
The majority of Jamestown’s leaders including Edward Maria Wingfield, John Ratcliffe,
George Kendall, and John Smith were military veterans who had served in the
512 Ibid., 114. 513 Ibid., 114. 514 Francisco Fernandes de Ecixa, “Deposition “Proceedings in the case of the Castor and Pollux:
Declaration of the captain, April 1605,” in NAW Vol. 5, 113. 515 Greene, Pursuits of Happiness, 8-9; Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 20-1; Canny, The Elizabethan
Conquest of Ireland: A Pattern Established 1565-1576, 160-1; Canny, Kingdom and Colony, 29.
Netherlands.516 This military experience was also representative of the majority of the 29
other gentlemen colonists recorded by John Smith.517 President Wingfield was perhaps
the most experienced soldier in Jamestown serving in Ireland, France, Portugal, and the
Netherlands from 1579 into the 1590’s.518
The example of England’s late sixteenth and early seventeenth-century
colonization efforts in Ireland were an important contemporary context for the Virginia
colonies, but Irish colonization was not a trade venture and was defined by the use of
military force and the seizure of Irish land.519 The tactics and objectives of Irish
coloinization served no purpose in North American trade colonies which initially sought
to avoid conflict with possible Native trade partners.520 The records of the English trade
voyages, Sagadahoc, and the early documents relating to Jamestown make minimal use
of analogies relating Native Americans to the Irish.521 John Smith utilizes only one such
analogy in his three works published before 1616, relating the Powhatans’ deerskin
mantles to Irish clothing.522 The principal source of Irish influence in early Jamestown
was President Wingfield who had military experience in Ireland, and this experience may
have influenced his militant policy against the Powhatans. The military background of
516 Edward Wright Haile, Jamestown Narratives: Eyewitness Accounts of the Virginia Colony, the First Decade, 1607-1617 (Champlain: RoundHouse, 1998), 54; Grizzard, and Smith, Jamestown Colony, 233; John Smith, The True Travels, in Horn. Captain John Smith, 690-1; Philip L. Barbour, “Captain George Kendall: Mutineer or Intelligencer?” The Virginia Magazine of History and Biography, 70, 3 (Jul.,1962), 302, 311.
517 Smith, “The Proceedings,” in NAW Vol. 5, 312. 518 Grizzard, and Smith, Jamestown Colony, 233. 519 Canny, Making Ireland British, 165; Canny, Kingdom and Colony, 29; Canny The Elizabethan Conquest
of Ireland, 92; Quinn, The Elizabethans and the Irish, 107. 520 Games, The Web of Empire, 255, 123; Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 212. 521 The three notable examples of Irish analogies by Martin Pring, Gabriel Archer, and John Smith all refer
to the clothing of Native Americans and are not commentaries on Native behaviour. Irish references are noticeably absent from Wingfield’s account given his Irish experience and hatred of the Powhatans. “Martin Pring’s Voyage,” in ENEV, 222; Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV, 177; Smith, A Map of Virginia, 5.
522 Smith, A Map of Virginia, 5.
the Jamestown colonists has been widely used by scholars to explain the violent nature of
English-Powhatan relations, and this certainly has validity in the initial conflict with the
Powhatans in May 1607.523
The colonists at Jamestown under President Wingfield matched the compromise
and diplomacy of Newport on his expedition up the James River with hostility and
violence against the Powhatans. While Newport and Archer explored the upper James
River, President Wingfield and the majority of the colonists began constructing
Jamestown on a small island-like peninsula in the land of the Paspahegh. When the
werowance of Paspahegh came to visit Jamestown with a complement of warriors, a
tense standoff ensued during which the English were openly hostile and refused to set
down their weapons.524 Later in this meeting an Englishman struck a Paspahegh man for
the theft of a hatchet, and the werowance of Paspahegh took this as a sign of open
hostility and retreated with his men.525 Soon after this conflict several hundred Powhatans
including the forces of Paspahegh, assaulted Jamestown.526
The Jamestown colonists ascribed the Powhatans’ attack to the realization that the
English intended to stay, with the construction of their fort.527 Jamestown was only a
threat to the Powhatans if the English were enemies. During his visit the werowance of
Paspahegh was investigating the nature of the English settling on his hunting territory. It
523 Steele, Warpaths, 40; Chaplin, “The British Atlantic,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 223-4, see, footnote 108.
524 George Percy, “A Trewe Relacyon,” in Horn. Captain John Smith , 926. 525 Ibid., 928. 526 Archer, “A relation of the Discovery of our River,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 97;
Smith, “The Proceedings,” in NAW Vol. 5, 311. 527 The London Council foresaw this violent reaction and Walter Cope confirms that the Powhatan assault
was considered a response to the English fort, The London Council, “Instructions given by way of advice,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 50; Walter Cope, “Sir Walter Cope to Lord Salisbury, 12 August 1607,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 110.
was English misconduct in their meeting with the Paspahegh that demonstrated their
hostility and caused the initial Powhatan assault. If Wingfield had provided the
Paspahegh with hospitality and gifts, similar to Newport’s conduct on his simultaneous
expedition, instead of blunt hostility and violence the initial assault almost certainly
would not have occurred. Jamestown’s leaders with military experience in Europe had
difficulty cooperating with the Powhatans and had a tendency to rely on violence over
compromise and diplomacy.
After the English were caught unprepared by the Powhatans’ assault in May and
in light of the ongoing ambushes, Wingfield began to arm and drill the colonists in late
May.528 With a shoot-on-sight policy that was likely due in part to the English’s inability
to distinguish between the various Powhatans, the English even began attacking those
Powhatans with whom Newport had established friendly relations.529 Newport departed
Jamestown on June 20th leaving Jamestown, “...in warres and in danger of the
Savages.”530 With Newport’s departure, the military men such as Wingfield and John
Smith took full control of English-Powhatan relations. Given the dire state of the colony
and the reality of ongoing warfare with the Powhatans it was a practical choice to favour
the experience of military men over those with trade voyage experiences such as
Bartholomew Gosnold, John Martin, and Gabriel Archer.531
The Powhatans decided to re-establish a tenuous peace with the English during
Newport’s absence, but Wingfield and the other military leaders of Jamestown continued
528 Smith, “The Proceedings,” in NAW Vol. 5,312. 529 Archer, “A relation of the Discovery of our River,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 96. 530 Percy, “A Trewe Relacyon,” in Horn. Captain John Smith , 932. 531 The Jamestown Council member John Martin was also a member of Gosnold’s 1602 north Virginian
Voyage, Brown, The First Republic in America, 33.
to rely on military force and ultimately considered the peace only a temporary truce.
Even as the Powhatans came to Jamestown daily with the gifts of corn and deer necessary
to keep the colonists alive, Wingfield declared, “the doubtfull peace that wee had with the
Indyans, which they would keepe no longer then opertunity served to doe us mischief.”532
George Percy another military man in early Jamestown similarly referred to the
Powhatans as his mortal enemies while depending on the Powhatans’ goodwill for his
daily sustenance.533 With these military men in charge of Jamestown there was little
chance of reconciliation with the Powhatans after the initial assault. John Smith was
unable to forgive the Powhatans, citing the initial attack in May 1607 as a precedent
when he imprisoned, questioned, and tortured several Powhatan men on a mere suspicion
of treachery in 1608.534
The Jamestown colonists’ military backgrounds contributed to the initial conflict
with the Powhatans and assured continued English hostility and militancy. The London
Company’s choice of European military veterans to lead Jamestown was partly a
response to the threat of Spanish attacks in the Chesapeake, but the English gentry was
virtually synonymous with military service, and those Englishmen with sufficient social
status to merit leadership positions were drawn from the ranks of privateers and soldiers
seeking employment following the Spanish peace in 1604.535 Yet, attributing the near
constant English-Powhatan struggle to Europe military experience alone is an
oversimplification. The colonists of Sagadahoc and Port Royal possessed military
532 Wingfield, “replies to the charges made against him,” in NAW Vol. 5, 278. 533 Percy, “A Trewe Relacyon,” in Horn. Captain John Smith, 934. 534 Smith, A True Relation, in Horn. Captain John Smith, 32-33. 535 Ian Steele refers to this class as the predatory English gentry, Steele, Warpaths, 40, Kupperman, The
Jamestown Project, 218.
backgrounds similar to the Jamestown colonists, but were able to maintain relatively
peaceful relations with their Native allies.
There is no doubt that the Sagadahoc colonists possessed military experience
similar to the Jamestown colonists, but the Sagadahoc colonists maintained peaceful
relations with their Eastern Abenaki allies despite their military backgrounds.536 The
colony’s most prominent members George Popham and Raleigh Gilbert possessed
military experience, but scholars have been unable to determine where and when they
acquired this experience. There were at least two prominent figures named George
Popham who may have been the Sagadahoc President; one George was a privateer with
experience in Guiana, and the other was a commander in Ireland.537 Raleigh Gilbert’s
specific military experience before Sagadahoc is unknown, but as captain of the Mary
and John, Admiral of Sagadahoc, and a relative of Humphrey Gilbert and Walter Raleigh
he undoubtedly had experience as a privateer.538
The majority of colonists with military experience in Sagadahoc were
demobilized soldiers who had fought against the Spanish in the Netherlands.539 Despite
the strong military nature of the Sagadahoc colony, the colonists maintained close
cooperative relations with the Pemiquid band of Eastern Abenaki and the representatives
of the sagamore Bashabes. The widespread assumption of poor English-Eastern Abenaki
relations in Sagadahoc has precluded scholars from asking why similar groups of
colonists in Jamestown and Sagadahoc developed distinctly different relations with local
536 ENEV, 87. 537 Ibid., Rice, The Life and Achievements of Sir John Popham, 245-6. 538 Samuel Purchase, “North VirginiaVoyages,” in ENEV, 349; Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in
ENEV, 416. 539 Ferdinando Gorges, A briefe narration, in ENEV, 339-340; Cope, “Sir Walter Cope to the earl of
Salisbury, December 1605 – January 1606,” in ENEV, 378.
Native groups. The military and trade voyage experience of the Port Royal colonists
sheds further light on both the importance and limitations of colonists’ formative
experiences in these French and English colonies.
Like the Jamestown and Sagadahoc colonists, the French colonists in Port Royal
were primarily military men. Most of the colony’s leaders had experience in France’s
recent civil war.540 The French civil war was in many ways an extension of the religious
war between the Spanish and the Dutch Protestants in the Low Countries. During the
French civil war England and the Protestant German powers both sent troops to support
Henri of Navarre, while Spanish landed troops in Brittany and invaded from the Spanish
Netherlands to support the French Catholic League.541 Wingfield fought in Brittany
during the French civil war, as did Samuel de Champlain, which demonstrates the
similarity between the military experience of the English and French colonists.542 Despite
their military experience, the French colonists maintained good relations with their
Mi’kmaq and Maliseet allies in Acadia. While the military men of Port Royal were
largely successful at maintaining cooperative Native relations, those instances of French-
Native violence that occurred in Port Royal help to explain the poor Native relations of
Jamestown.
De Mons and Poutrincourt’s conflicts with the Armouchiquois in southern Acadia
provide a parallel to the divide in Native policies between Newport and Wingfield in
Jamestown. De Mons and Poutrincourt were both veterans of the French civil war, but
540 Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 7; Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 6. 541 Knetcht, The French Wars of Religion, 1559-1598, 227, 241, 251, 257. 542 “Payment of Various Sums to Jean Hardy and Samuel de Champlain, for Their Wages and Traveling
Expenses in the Royal Army of Brittany, March 1595 – April 1597,” in DSOD, 163-165; Grizzard and Smith, Jamestown Colony, 233.
Poutrincourt had limited experience in North America while de Mons had been involved
in New France and Acadia since his visit to the St. Lawrence in 1600.543 The voyages
commanded by de Mons and Poutrincourt both ended in conflicts with the
Armouchiquois in 1605 and 1606. Yet, the more experienced de Mons displayed restraint
in the face of the Native attack while Poutrincourt responded with excessive retaliation.
Champlain reported that de Mons only attacked the Armouchiquois after they had slain a
French sailor, and even then he called off the attack and released a Native prisoner when
he determined that nothing would be gained from further conflict.544 Like Newport
among the Powhatans in May of 1607, de Mons used restraint and compromise gained
through his trade voyage experience when dealing with the newly encountered
Armouchiquois.
In contrast Poutrincourt instigated the conflict with the Armouchiquois in 1606.
Poutrincourt met the Armouchiquois with a hostile display of French weapons, and
during this meeting the French fired at several Natives in retaliation for theft.545
Poutrincourt’s hostility and violence towards the Armouchiquois provides a close parallel
to the hostility and violence Wingfield exhibited towards the Paspahegh in Jamestown
before the initial assault on the colony. Poutrincourt and Wingfield were military
commanders with limited experience in North America, and they both relied on their
European military experience in dealing with Native groups. The Armouchiquois
responded to Poutrincourt’s attacks with violence, as did the Paspahegh in their assault on
543 Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 7; Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 7; Biggar, The Early Trading Companies of New France, 42.
544 Champlain, Vol. I,354, 356-7; Lescarbot, Vol. II,277. 545 Ibid., 333.
Jamestown in May of 1607.546 While de Mons saw that there was nothing to gain from
further conflict and released an Armouchiquois captive, Poutrincourt attempted to take a
number of captives and killed numerous Armouchiquois in revenge.547 Poutrincourt’s use
of excessive retaliation matches the militarization against the Powhatans that the English
underwent under Wingfield following the assault on Jamestown in May of 1607. The
parallels between Poutrincourt and Wingfield demonstrate that the divide in Native
relations between colonists with military experience and those with trade voyage
experience were real and extended to both the French and English in the early
seventeenth century.
The Jamestown colonists sought to establish trade relations with Powhatans, and
many of the English possessed trade voyage experiences which had taught them the
importance of restraint and compromise in cooperating with Native trade partners. Yet,
from the beginning the numerous military men within the colony such as Wingfield relied
on force in dealing with the Powhatans and were unable to forget or to forgive previous
conflicts while formulating the colony’s policies towards the Powhatans. European
military experience did not directly correspond to hostility and violence against Natives.
Despite their military experience and capacity for violence, the Sagadahoc colonists were
able to maintain peaceful relations with the Eastern Abenaki and the Port Royal colonists
remained close allies with the Mi’kmaq and Maliseet. What caused the Jamestown
colonists’ conflict with the Powhatans, and why did the French utilize their military
experience against the Armouchiquois but not the Mi’kmaq and Maliseet? Consideration
of French and English characteristics, experiences, and actions only addresses half of the
546 Ibid., 333-4; Champlain, Vol. I, 420. 547 Ibid., 427.
equation which resulted in the Native relations of Jamestown, Port Royal, and
Sagadahoc. Due to Euro-centric biases in the availability of sources scholars are largely
restricted to seeking causation within English and French experiences and actions, but a
comparative-Native perspective helps to shed light on the importance of Native
characteristics in producing both cooperative and hostile Native-colonist relations in
these three colonies.
*
The Impact of Native Societies on French and English Colonization
The violent French-Armouchiquois encounters and reoccurring conflicts between
the English and Powhatans cannot be explained by the colonists’ formative experiences
alone. The characteristics of Native groups and their previous experiences were central in
shaping colonist-Native interaction in Jamestown, Port Royal, and Sagadahoc. The
Powhatans and Armouchiquois shared a number of characteristics relating to their
agricultural lifeways that contributed to their violent relations with English and French
colonists. These characteristics distinguished the Powhatans and Armouchiquois from the
semi-nomadic hunter-gather Eastern Abenaki, Mi’kmaq, and Maliseet who shared traits
which facilitated peaceful relations with French and English colonists.
The Armouchiquois of Cape Cod had limited interaction with Europeans prior to
their encounters with the French in 1605 and 1606. Before the renewal of French and
English voyages in the early seventeenth century it is unlikely that the Armouchiquois
traded with Europeans due to their position far to the south of the Newfoundland fishery
and the established fur trade sphere in the Gulf of St. Lawrence.548 Bartholomew
Gosnold’s voyage of 1602 and Martin Pring’s voyage of 1603 both explored Cape Cod
near where the French fought the Armouchiquois in Stage and Nauset Harbours.549 The
Gosnold voyage encountered Natives likely belonging to the Nauset band who
approaching the English to engage in trade.550 While Gosnold and Pring’s crews avoided
violent conflicts with the Natives of Cape Cod, both small groups felt threatened by the
numerous Natives they encountered along the coast. Hostile standoffs ensued during both
voyages when small groups of Englishmen were approached by dozens of Native men
armed with bows.551 The English encounters with the Natives of Cape Cod were not
unlike de Mons’ conflict with the Armouchiquois in Nauset Harbour. Both English
voyages departed on bad terms with the local Natives, after an English forager was
wounded during the Gosnold voyage and after a tense standoff with nearly a hundred
Native warriors during the Pring voyage.552 The Armouchiquois lacked considerable
experience with Europeans, and this likely contributed to the misunderstandings,
hostility, and violence with the French in 1605 and 1606. Like the crews of the Gosnold
and Pring voyages, one of the primary reasons for French hostility towards the
Armouchiquois was that the French felt threatened by the overwhelming numbers of the
Armouchiquois.
548 Bourque and Whitehead argue that European traders in region of the Eastern Abenaki and Armouchiquois were minimal before 1602, with the Mi’kmaq acting as middlemen, Bourque and Whitehead, “Trade and alliances in the contact period,” in Baker ed. American Beginnings, 132, 138-9.
549 “Martin Pring’s Voyage to ‘North Virginia’ in 1603,” in ENEV, 218; Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV,118.
550 Ibid., 118-122. Thus, three leading men in Jamestown, Bartholomew Gosnold, John Martin, and Gabriel Archer encountered the Armouchiquois prior to their arrival in Jamestown.
551 Ibid., 134; “Martin Pring’s Voyage to ‘North Virginia’ in 1603,” in ENEV, 227. 552 Ibid., 227; Archer, “The Relation of Captaine Gosnols Voyage,” in ENEV,136.
The Armouchiquois greatly outnumbered the small French crews encountered in
1605 and 1606, and this was a primary cause of the French hostility during de Mons and
Poutrincourt’s voyages. Heading south in 1605, Champlain observed that the lands of the
Armouchiquois were far more populous than the other regions of Acadia the French had
previously seen.553 During a stop along the coast prior to the conflict in Stage Harbour
Champlain commented, “Poutrincourt caught sight in the woods of a great many Indians,
who with the intention of doing us some injury were on their way...”554 The mere
appearance of a large Native group produced hostility and fear among the French. The
French apprehension of the Armouchiquois’ overpowering numbers is clear in
Champlain’s depiction of the battle between the French and Armouchiquois in Stage
Harbour. Champlain’s sketch features less than a dozen Frenchmen, many of them
pierced with arrows, fighting outnumbered against a multitude of Armouchiquois
warriors estimated to be 400 in number.555 Champlain may have embellished the number
of Armouchiquois warriors, but in any case the prominence of the Armouchiquois’ large
numbers in Champlain’s account demonstrates the French associated large Native groups
with hostile and violent encounters.
The Powhatans and Armouchiquois’ conflicts with Europeans were shaped by
their large populations and agricultural lifeways. The Powhatans had an estimated
population of 13,000 people living on 6,500 square miles extending inland to the fall
lines of the various rivers feeding into the southern Chesapeake in 1607.556 The
553 Champlain, Vol. I, 337. 554 Ibid., 339. 555 Ibid., 420; Plate LXXIX, facing page 428. 556 Helen C. Rountree, “Who Were the Powhatans and Did They Have a Unified ‘Foreign Policy’?” in
Helen C. Rountree ed., Powhatan Foreign Relations 1500-1722 (Charlottesville: University Press of Virginia, 1993), 1; Gallivan, James River Chiefdoms, 22.
Powhatans were a semi-sedentary farming people who lived off a mixture of agriculture,
fishing, hunting, and gathering.557 While information on the various Natives groups
referred to as the Armouchiquois is limited, they are clearly defined by Champlain and
Pring as a populous people living in villages and practicing intensive agriculture along
the coast of modern New England south of the Saco River.558 The Powhatans and
Armouchiquois’ large and dense populations were a primary cause of their conflict with
Europeans. Native groups with large populations were more likely to have violent
encounters with Europeans because, as was seen in the case of the French and English
among the Armouchiquois, the small groups of English and French exploring and settling
the North American coast were threatened when outnumbered by Natives.
The large and dense population of the Powhatans triggered hostility among the
military men in Jamestown and exacerbated these military men’s reliance on force. Like
Champlain among the Armouchiquois, the densely inhabited nature of the Chesapeake
struck the Spaniard Juan Rogel in 1572 who observed:
I have noticed that the population here is thicker than has been seen in any other part of the coast that has been discovered ; and it appears to me that they live here with habitations more fixed than in any of the other places where I have been.559
Despite limited evidence, pre-1600 epidemics in the Chesapeake certainly occurred as a
result of repeated contact with Europeans, and epidemics broke out soon after English-
Powhatan contact in 1607.560 The Powhatans’ maintained their high population levels
557 Rountree and Turner, Before and After Jamestown, 87. 558 Champlain, Vol. I, 327, 398; “Martin Pring’s Voyage to ‘North Virginia’ in 1603,” in ENEV, 223. 559 Rogel, “Letter of Juan Rogel to Francis Borgia, From the Bay of the Mother of God, August 28, 1572,”
in E. I. Devitt, "Axacan: The Martyrs of the Rappahannock," 15.
following epidemics and ongoing warfare by absorbing conquered peoples.561 In his
aggressive expansion the paramount chief Powhatan absorbed 24 separate districts before
the arrival of the English and continued to wage expansionist wars against the
Chesapeakes and other peoples in 1607.562 During these wars of expansion and in their
ongoing struggles with the rival Native groups to the northwest the Powhatans constantly
absorbed conquered peoples and replenished their population following the inevitable
decline resulting from the introduction of Eurasian diseases.
The English directly linked the Powhatans’ large population to their conflicts in
1607. In 1607 Thomas Studley commented on the danger encountered during John
Smith’s trade voyages throughout the Chesapeake due to the, “…want of a suffiecient
power, (knowing the multitude of the Salvages)…”563 Captain Newport also saw a
connection between the violence with the Powhatans experienced in Jamestown in 1607
and the high population of the region. After speaking to Newport on his arrival in
Plymouth in 1607 Ferdinando Gorges reported to the Earl of Salisbury that the people of
the Chesapeake were, “daungerouse to bee dealt with, beinge by nature valiente and in
number many.”564 The Paspahegh alone mustered as many fighting men as Jamestown
when they visited in May of 1607, and they were only one of the 30 Algonquin groups
loyal to the paramount chief Powhatan.565 The small groups of French and English
colonists were far more likely to overreact with violence against the Armouchiquois and
560 Helen C. Rountree and Randolph Turner, “The Evolution of the Powhatan Paramount Chiefdom in Virginia” in Elsa Redmond ed., Chiefdoms and Chieftaincy in the Americas (Gainesville: University of Florida, 1998); Douglas H. Ubelaker, “Human biology of Virginia Indians,” in Rountree ed., Powhatan Foreign Relations, 54, Kupperman, Indians and English, 34.
561 Gallivan, James River Chiefdoms, 3, 7, 28, 31. 562 Rountree, and Turner, Before and After Jamestown, 37. 563 Smith, “The Proceedings,” in NAW Vol. 5, 313. 564 Gorges, “Sir Ferdinando Gorges to Earl of Salisbury,” 1607 August 7, in NAW Vol.3, 414. 565 Percy, “A Discourse of the Plantation,” in NAW Vol.5, 271.
Powhatans solely on the basis of their large and dense populations.566 Colonist-Native
interactions in Jamestown, Port Royal, and Sagadahoc were not simply the result of
colonists acting and Natives reacting. As a result of their semi-sedentary agricultural
lifeways the Powhatans were highly territorial and possessed a complex governmental
system designed for warfare against Natives and Europeans alike.
The Powhatans possessed a history of reoccurring violence with Europeans prior
to the establishment of Jamestown. The Powhatans had several clashes with the Spanish
in the 1570’s. The Paspahegh slaughtered a Jesuit mission on the York River in 1571,
which sparked a brutal and indiscriminate reprisal from a Spanish fleet under the
command of Governor Pedro Menéndez in 1572.567 In 1588 another Spanish expedition
to the Chesapeake kidnapped several Natives.568 Perhaps not incidentally, Bartholomew
Gilbert and several of his men were killed by Natives along the coast near the
Chesapeake Bay in 1603.569 The Powhatans experience with Europeans prior to the
establishment of Jamestown was erratic and dominated by violence, and this trend simply
continued into English-Powhatan relations.
Warfare was endemic in the Chesapeake during the late sixteenth and early
seventeenth centuries. In addition to reoccurring fights with the Spanish along the coast
the Chesapeake Natives were facing attacks from the Monacans and other Native groups
566 Karen Kupperman observes the Jamestown colonists’ tendency to overreact and rely on excessive retaliation when threatened, and this can be extended to the personnel of Sagadahoc and Port Royal as well, Karen Kupperman, Indians and English: Facing Off in Early America (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 2000), 9.
567 Rogel, “Letter of Juan Rogel to Francis Borgia,” in Devitt, "Axacan: The Martyrs of the Rappahannock," 11-15.
568 Kupperman, The Jamestown Project, 105. 569 Canner, “Thomas Canner’s Account of Bartholomew Gilbert’s Voyage,” in NAW Vol. 5, 166.
from the interior.570 The political organization of the Powhatans was highly complex with
roughly thirty separate towns with local and district chiefs organized under the leadership
of the paramount chief Powhatan.571 This paramount chiefdom was a response to external
military pressures on the Algonquians of the southern Chesapeake in an era of repeated
droughts and increased competition for territory.572 In 1607 the Jamestown colonists
choose to settle among a populous cluster of Native groups who were well versed in
defending their land against Natives and Europeans alike, and due to the Powhatans’
militancy reoccurring English-Native conflict was nearly unavoidable.
The Powhatans’ militant foreign policy would shape the first English-Native
encounter in the Chesapeake during Jamestown. On their initial landing on the southern
shore of the Chesapeake Bay the English were ambushed by a group of Natives who
injured Gabriel Archer and a sailor before retreating.573 Whether these Native attackers
were Powhatans or members of the rival Native group known as the Chesapeake, the
attack shows the violence that dominated Native-Native and Native-European relations in
the region. The Paspahegh assault on Jamestown and the reoccurring conflicts between
the English and Powhatans throughout the early years of the colony were merely a
continuation of the Powhatans’ existing policy towards hostile invaders. The conflict
between the English and Powhatan resulted from both Native and English military
experiences and a reliance on force. Instances of peaceful interaction between the English
570 E. Randolph Turner, “Native American Protohistoric Interactions in the Powhatan Core Area,” in Rountree ed., Powhatan Foreign Relations, 76.
571 Helen C. Rountree, “Who Were the Powhatans and Did They Have a Unified ‘Foreign Policy’?” in Rountree ed., Powhatan Foreign Relations, 3.
572 Rountree and Turner, “The Evolution of the Powhatan Paramount Chiefdom in Virginia” in Redmond ed., Chiefdoms and Chieftaincy, 275-278; Turner, “Native American Protohistoric Interactions in the Powhatan Core Area,” in Rountree ed., Powhatan Foreign Relations, 90.
573 Percy, “A Discourse of the Plantation,” in NAW Vol.5, 268-269.
and Powhatans such as Newport’s expedition up the James River in 1607 required that
both sides exercise restraint and possess sufficient motivation to maintain cooperative
relations. Predictably, instances of close English-Powhatan cooperation were almost
exclusively facilitated by trade, and both the Powhatans and English found it difficult to
maintain such relationships for long in the early years of Jamestown.
The extent to which the Powhatans’ political structure and militant foreign policy
reflected the populous agriculturalist Armouchiquois is unclear. It is possible that the
Armouchiquois possessed a militant territoriality due to their lifeways, and their violent
retaliation against the conduct of de Mons and Poutrincourt parallels the behaviour of the
Powhatans against the English. Unfortunately due to severally limited sources the
political structure and foreign policy of the various groups referred to as the
Armouchiquois in 1604-6 cannot be substantiated. Despite their hostility to the French
and English the Armouchiquois and Powhatans greatly desired these Europeans’ trade
goods, and trade relations were further influenced by these Natives groups’ lifeways.
As populous semi-sedentary farms, the Armouchiquois possessed agricultural
surpluses but few valuable trade goods. The French in Port Royal had little interest in
trading for agricultural products, and as a result the French had no economic incentive to
maintain good relations with the Armouchiquois. Champlain observed a group of
Maliseet and Mi’kmaq under Secodun and Messamouet trading French goods such as
axes, knives, and kettles with the Armouchiquois near the Saco River.574 The
Armouchiquois provided agricultural products such as corn, beans, and squash in
exchange for these European trade goods, but the Mi’kmaq and Maliseet were displeased
574 Champlain, Vol. I,395-6; Lescarbot, Vol. II, 323.
with the exchange and decided to make war on the Armouchiquois.575 Champlain also
mentions the French trading a few items for chards, but does not mention furs or any
substantial trading among the Armouchiquois.576 The Armouchiquois did not have the
large quantities of furs the semi-nomadic hunters to the north such as the Eastern Abenaki
possessed.577
The conflict with the Armouchiquois during de Mons voyage was the result of the
theft of a kettle.578 The Armouchiquois likely resorted to theft because the French were
uninterested in trading their goods for corn and squash. The English refusal to trade with
the Sabenoa’s band of Eastern Abenaki had resulted in similar Native hostility in
Sagadahoc. Trade was a central part of Native diplomacy. Secodun and Messamouet
decided to go to war with the Armouchiquois of Saco River when they did not adequately
reciprocate their gifts of French goods, and the French disinterest in trading with the
Armouchiquois would have sparked similar resentment.579 The Armouchiquois lack of
valuable trade goods contributed to the hostility and violence with the French under de
Mons and Poutrincourt in 1605 and 1606. While the French did not encounter serious
food shortages in Port Royal and had no interest in agricultural products, the English at
Jamestown found themselves in dire need of the Powhatans’ corn in 1607.
The English in Jamestown desperately needed Native agricultural products as a
result of their chronic supply shortage. English dependence on the Powhatans’ foodstuffs
575 Ibid., 323; Champlain, Vol. I, 396. 576 Ibid., 398. 577 Quinn & Quinn observe that the Nauset Natives had few furs of little value during the Gosnolod voyage,
see, ENEV, 122 footnote 2. In comparison Rosier reported trading for 40 beaver skins in a single trading session with a group of Eastern Abenaki, Rosier, “A Trve Relation,” in ENEV, 273.
578 Champlain, Vol. I, 353-4. 579 Ibid., 395-6; Lescarbot, Vol. II,323.
fostered short-term cooperative trade, but ultimately resulted in conflict over scarce and
essential agricultural resources. With Wingfield and then Ratcliffe overseeing the
Jamestown settlement, Captain John Smith conducted trade and exploration expeditions
throughout the Chesapeake in the absence of Newport in 1607-1609.580 Smith was an
aggressive trader who saw Newport’s adherence to Native protocol in his gift exchanges
as weak and wasteful.581 In 1608 during a meeting with the paramount chief Powhatan,
colonists Studley and Todkill observed, “we had not 4.bushels for that we expected 20.
hogsheads...Newport seeking to please the humor of the unsatible Salvage; Smith to
cause the Salvage to please him...”582 Smith was a hardened military veteran with
experience in the Netherlands and Eastern Europe.583 Perhaps as a result of his military
experience Smith was virtually incapable of trusting Native Americans, and used openly
hostile trade tactics against the Powhatans.
The Powhatans were often willing to trade their corn for copper, beads, hatchets,
and other goods, but they had a relatively limited corn surplus and as early as 1607
Powhatan villages were refusing to trade with the English.584 The English dependence on
Native corn led Smith to use force when the Powhatans refused to trade.585 Describing
Smith’s method of trading with the Powhatans in 1608 Russell and Todkill commented:
580 Smith, “The Proceedings,” in NAW Vol. 5, 317. 581 Ibid., 316, This divide between the diplomacy of Smith and Newport is discussed by Daniel Richter who
considers Smith’s missteps as the primary cause of renewed Native-English warfare in 1608-9, Daniel Richter “Tsenacommacah and the Atlantic World”, in Mancall ed., The Atlantic World and Virginia, 1550-1624, 58.
582 Smith, “The Proceedings,” in NAW Vol. 5, 316. 583 John Smith, The True Travels, in Horn. Captain John Smith, 690-1, 696-707. 584 The first recorded instance of Smith initiating trade using force occurred in 1607 against the Kecoughtan
on the lower James. This tactic became increasingly prominent as the Powhatans became less willing to trade with the English in 1608-9. See, Smith, “The Proceedings,” in NAW Vol. 5, 314, 326, 327, 329, 337.
585 Ibid.
…at our first meeting our captaine ever observed this order to demaunde their bowes and arrows swords mantles or furres, with some childe for hostage, wherby he could quickly perceive when they intended any villainy.586
In Jamestown the English demand for the Powhatans agricultural trade goods resulted in
hostility and conflict. The Powhatan were numerous and depended on agriculture to
supplement their hunting, fishing, and gathering in an era of intense drought.587 If Smith
and the English had traded for non-essential goods such as furs with the Powhatans, like
the colonists in Sagadahoc and Port Royal, much of the conflict that plagued the colony
throughout its early history might have been avoided.588
While the Chesapeake would later prove capable of a profitable fur trade the main
source of furs was the Potomac River far to the north of Jamestown, and the colonists’
extreme need for foodstuffs took precedents over the fur trade in the early years of the
colony.589 The English conflict with the Powhatans was partially caused by the
Powhatans possession of substantial quantities of corn and the London Company’s
continued failure to supply the Jamestown colonists. The Powhatans and Armouchiquois’
agricultural lifeways and their violent conflicts with the French and English stand in stark
contrast to the cooperation between the colonists of Sagadahoc and Port Royal and their
semi-nomadic hunter-gather allies.
The Mi’kmaq, Eastern Abenaki, and Maliseet peoples encountered by the
Sagadahoc and Port Royal colonists did not farm, lived in dispersed groups, and
possessed more considerable stores of furs for trade. In 1604 the Mi’kmaq had a
586 Ibid., 321. 587 Rountree and Turner, Before and After Jamestown, 143-44. 588 Kupperman argues that the English-Powhatans struggle centers on scarce foodstuffs. Kupperman, The
Jamestown Project, 223. 589 Rice, Nature and History in the Potomac Country, 86-93.
population of 3,000 living on approximately 30,000 square miles in what is today Nova
Scotia, Cape Breton, and Prince Edward Island. 590 At the time the Mi’kmaq were a
seasonal migratory people living off game, fishing, and gathering.591 The description of
the Eastern Abenaki land of Mawooshen provided by the captives taken by Waymouth in
1605 listed 21 villages with an adult male population of 2,930 for a total population of
perhaps 10,000 living on 20,000 square miles between the Saco and Penobscot Rivers.592
Father Biard estimated the total Eastern Abenaki population from the Penobscot to the
Kennebec was only 3,000 in 1616.593 The Eastern Abenaki captives and the English
likely overstated the Eastern Abenaki population in 1605-6, but this discrepancy also
depicts the terrible ravages of European diseases on Native American populations.
In his exploration of the Acadian coast Champlain observed that the Mi’kmaq,
Eastern Abenaki, and Maliseet possessed similar non-agricultural lifeways.594 As a result
of their large territories and semi-nomadic lifeways the Mi’kmaq, Eastern Abenaki, and
Maliseet had access to considerable supplies of furs and pelts valued by the French and
English. Colonists and Natives’ mutual desire for trade facilitated cooperation while
avoiding the tensions inherent in trading essential foodstuffs such as corn. The Powhatans
had a population density at least four times higher than the Eastern Abenaki and twenty
times higher than the Mi’kmaq. Because these Native groups in Acadia had low
population densities and dispersed settlement patterns the French and English often dealt
590 Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 22; Griffiths, From Migrant to Acadian, 9. 591 Ibid., 11. 592 Dean R. Snow, “The Ethnohistoric Baseline of the Eastern Abenaki Ethnohistory,” Ethnohistory, 23, 3
(Summer, 1976), 299-300. 593 Ibid., 304; Biard, “Relation of New France,” in Reuben Gold Thwaites, The Jesuit Relations and Allied
Documents, Vol. 3, 111. 594 Champlain, Vol. I, 308.
with smaller Native groups that did not trigger the fear and hostility that was produced by
encounters with the numerous Powhatans and Armouchiquois.
Port Royal’s Mi’kmaq and Maliseet trade partners were far less numerous than
the Powhatans and Armouchiquois, and the French often outnumbered their Native allies
or dealt with them from a position of numerical parity. The Mi’kmaq band near Port
Royal led by Membertou spent much of 1605 and 1606 living in close proximity to the
French. Lescarbot described how Membertou and between 20-30 Mi’kmaq were always
in attendance at Port Royal’s evening meals during the winter of 1606.595 Port Royal had
79 wintering colonists in 1604 and 45 in 1605.596 Even if the total number of
Membertou’s band was greater than the French, the French could muster more fighting
men and were unlikely to be threatened by the Mi’kmaq. The French often found
themselves only moderately outnumbered by Native groups of 20 or 30 men during trade
voyage encounters among the Mi’kmaq, Maliseet, and Eastern Abenaki.597 The largest
Native gathering the French encountered north of the Armouchiquois was during their
meeting with Bashabes which included three Eastern Abenaki groups with a combined
total of approximately 80 men.598 Predictably, Champlain commented that the French
were on their guard during this meeting with their weapons ready due to the large
numbers of Eastern Abenaki present.599 Dealing with smaller Native groups gave the
French confidence and helped to avoid the fear, hostility, and violence that resulted when
both the French and English were outnumbered by Native groups. This same trend holds
true for the Sagadahoc colony.
595 Lescarbot, Vol. II, 343. 596 Champlain, Vol. I, 304, 371. 597 Ibid., 316. 598 Ibid., 294-5. 599 Ibid., 294-5.
The English colonists in Sagadahoc were able to cooperate with the Eastern
Abenaki with limited hostility or violence because they possessed numerical superiority
over their Native partner. The English reported Nahanda’s Pemiquid band of Eastern
Abenaki numbered 100 individuals including men, women, and children.600 With over a
hundred initial colonists, Sagadahoc possessed several times more fighting men than the
Pemiquid, and the Davis journal never hints at the English feeling threatened by the
Pemiquid. On the contrary, during their initial visit to the Pemiquid a group of fifty
Englishmen made the Pemiquid nervous, and Popham decided to land only twelve
men.601 During Raleigh Gilbert’s tense standoff with the Eastern Abenaki on the
Kennebec River, the only confirmed incident of English-Eastern Abenaki hostility, the
numerical parity of the English crew and the Eastern Abenaki likely contributed to both
groups level-headed withdrawal without violence.602 The Sagadahoc colonists were less
likely to feel threatened and overreact with violence against the Eastern Abenaki because
they were not overwhelming outnumbered, as the English and French would find
themselves among the Powhatans and Armouchiquois. The lack of English and French
hostility and aggression towards their Native allies in Sagadahoc and Port Royal was
matched by Mi’kmaq and Eastern Abenaki acceptance of French and English settlement.
The Mi’kmaq, Eastern Abenaki, and Maliseet’s semi-nomadic hunter-gather
lifeways did not generate the militant territoriality the Powhatans displayed towards the
English. Far from opposing French and English settlement the Mi’kmaq and Eastern
Abenaki eagerly embraced their presence for their own ends. In the southern Chesapeake
600 Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV, 426. 601 Ibid., 427-8. 602 The Kennebec Eastern Abenaki numbered 16 compared to the 9 Englishmen in Gilbert’s boat, Strachey,
“The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania,” in ENEV,410.
the Powhatan utilized all available land either as farmland or hunting grounds.603 Thus,
soon after the English began to construct Jamestown the werowance of Paspahegh arrived
with a hundred warriors to investigate the intrusion on his lands.604
The Mi’kmaq, Eastern Abenaki, and Maliseet possessed their own forms of
territoriality, but they could easily spare the small areas occupied by St. Croix, Port
Royal, and Sagadahoc.605 The Eastern Abenaki sagamore Sabenoa declared himself lord
of the Kennebec to the English, but he saw Sagadahoc as a trade opportunity rather than a
territorial intrusion.606 Sagadahoc was not in close proximity to any Eastern Abenaki
villages, and both the Pemiquid band and representatives of Bashabes took the initiative
traveling to Sagadahoc in order to establish relations with the English. The Mi’kmaq
eagerly welcomed the French when they relocated their colony from St. Croix to Port
Royal in 1605. The Mi’kmaq group led by Membertou took advantage of this opportunity
by remaining in the vicinity of the colony until its evacuation in 1607.607 Membertou and
his band gained access to French trade goods and prestige among the Mi’kmaq through
their association with Port Royal, and the Eastern Abenaki hoped for the same first with
the French and then the English.608 The Mi’kmaq, Eastern Abenaki, and Maliseet
acceptance of French and English settlement was partly the result of their large territories
and dispersed settlement patterns, but they were also eager to welcome the colonist
because their extensive European trade experience gave them a considerable knowledge
of European objectives and facilitated communication.
603 Rountree and Turner, Before and After Jamestown, 84. 604 George Percy, “A Trewe Relacyon,” in Horn, Captain John Smith , 928. 605 For discussion of the Mi’kmaq and Maliseet’s wars with the Eastern Abenaki and Armouchiquois, see,
Thorp, “Equals of the King: The Balance of Power in Early Acadia,” 1-10. 606 Davis, “The Relation of a Voyage,” in ENEV, 441. 607 Lescarbot, Vol. II,343. 608 Thorp, “Equals of the King: The Balance of Power in Early Acadia,” 10, 12.
The Mi’kmaq and Eastern Abenaki’s acceptance of French and English
settlements was a result of their substantial European trade experience which facilitated
communication and trade. The Mi’kmaq had longstanding ties to European traders and
possessed a wealth of knowledge about Europeans prior to establishment of Port Royal.
When the French arrived in Acadia they encountered Mi’kmaq such as Messamouet who
spoke a mixture of French and Basque and had been to France.609 The Mi’kmaq were not
only established French trade partners, but were themselves mariners and traders along
the Acadian coast.610 The Mi’kmaq were fully aware of the French interest in the fur
trade, and were able to effectively communicate with the colonists using their French-
Basque trade language. The circumstances of English-Eastern Abenaki interaction in
Sagadahoc were much the same as French-Mi’kmaq relations. Despite being further
removed from the European traders, the Eastern Abenaki traded with the English in 1605
during the Waymouth voyages, and with the French expeditions sent out from Port
Royal.611 The Eastern Abenaki trade experience was matched by linguistic and cultural
intermediates in Nahanda and Skidwarres who had spent time in England and could
effectively communicate with the Sagadahoc colonists.612The Mi’kmaq and Eastern
Abenaki’s trade experience and knowledge of European languages were key factors in
establishing cooperative trade alliances with French and English colonists, and these were
advantages that were entirely lacking in the English-Powhatan and French-
Armouchiquois encounters.
609 Lescarbot, Vol. II,324. 610 Bourque and Whitehead, “Trade and alliances in the contact period,” in Baker ed. American Beginning,
138-9; see footnote 70. 611 Rosier, “A Trve Relation,” in ENEV,302, Champlain, Vol. I, 292-6. 612 The clearest example of the considerable communication skills developed by Nahanda and Skidwarres is
the detailed description of the Eastern Abenaki peoples based on their information, “Eastern Abenaki captives describe their country of Mawooshen,” in ENEV, 470-6.
Tensions between the Jamestown colonists and the Powhatans were heightened by
their limited ability to communicate. The Englishmen Thomas Harriot compiled
substantial amounts of ethnographic information on coastal Algonquin peoples south of
the Chesapeake and acquired a working knowledge of the region’s Algonquin language
during the first Roanoke colony of 1585-6.613 The London Virginia Company purchased
Harriot’s published works, but it seems they did not utilizes his language skills,
consulting him only once in person during 1609.614 As a result of this missed opportunity
the English arrived in the Chesapeake without any means of communicating with the
Powhatans. In the month following the English arrival in the Chesapeake Gabriel Archer
reported the English attempted to communicate with the Powhatans through hand
gestures, and Archer struggled to acquire a few words of Algonquin from the Powhatan
Naviran.615 In the fall of 1607, more than five months after the English arrival in the
Chesapeake Thomas Studley reported that John Smith set out to trade despite, “the want
of the language...& other necessaries, [which] were infinite impediments...”616 The
English and Powhatan were slow to develop even basic communication skills, and
effective communication beyond describing objects and simple actions was only possible
after cultural intermediates such as Thomas Savage had lived among the Powhatans for
several years.617 The English and Powhatans inability to communicate was bound to lead
to cultural misunderstandings and hostility. The Powhatans’ main experience with
613 David B. Quinn, Set Fair for Roanoke, 416; Karen O. Kupperman, Roanoke: The Abandoned Colony, 96.
614 Ibid., 164. 615 Archer, “A relation of the Discovery of our River,” in Barbour, The Jamestown Voyages, Vol. I, 82, 90. 616 Smith, “The Proceedings,” in NAW Vol. 5, 313. 617 Smith reported that Thomas Savage was left with Chief Powhatan by Captain Newport in 1608, and
according to Ralph Hamor Savage had become a natural speaker of the Powhatans’ language in 1615. See, Smith, A True Relation, in Horn. Captain John Smith, 24; Ralph Hamor, “A True Discourse of the Present Estate of Virginia,” in Horn. Captain John Smith, 1146-7; Kupperman, Indians and English: Facing Off in Early America, 83-87.
Europeans prior to Jamestown consisted of violent encounters with the Spanish, and
without an English explanation to the contrary the Powhatans could reasonably assume
the English were hostile like the Spanish before them.
The French-Armouchiquois and English-Kennebec Eastern Abenaki conflicts
were partly caused by the language barriers between these groups as well. The Mi’kmaq
and Maliseet interpreters could not understand the language of the Armouchiquois.
Champlain observed, “Our Indian could understand only certain words, inasmuch as the
language of the Almouchiquois..differs entirely from that of the Souriquois and
Etechemins.”618 The French inability to communicate with the Armouchiquois made it
impossible for Champlain to ask simple question such as how much snow the region
received, and this lack of communication led to tensions and violence during these
encounters.619 The only Native-French encounters that ended in violence were those that
lacked effectively communication. Similarly, when the English colonists at Sagadahoc
dealt with the Eastern Abenaki of the Kennebec River without their interpreters Nahanda
and Skidwarres hostility and a tense standoff resulted. The correlation between poor
communication and hostile in colonist-Native relations is confirmed by the events of
Jamestown, Port Royal, and Sagadahoc.
The semi-sedentary agricultural lifeways of the Powhatans and Armouchiquois
resulted in a number of similar characteristics which caused conflicts with the Jamestown
and Port Royal colonists. The division between the agriculturalist Powhatans and
Armouchiquois’ hostile European relations and the semi-nomadic hunter-gather
618 Champlain, Vol. I, 325: “Nostre Sauuage ne pouuoit entendre que quelques mots, d’autant que la langue Almouchiquoise, comme s’appelle ceste nation, differe du tout de celle des Souriquois & Etechemins.”
619 Ibid., 323, 338.
Mi’kmaq, Maliseet, and Eastern Abenaki’s cooperative European relations verifies the
key importance of Native characteristics and actions in determining Native-colonist
relations in Jamestown, Port Royal, and Sagadahoc.
The dense populations of the Armouchiquois and Powhatans provided an
overwhelming numerical superiority over English and French colonists, which generated
fear and caused a reliance on force among both the French and English. The French and
English’s propensity for violence was matched by the militancy of the Armouchiquois
and Powhatans. The French were uninterested in the agricultural products of the
Armouchiquois which allowed for violence without harming Port Royal’s Native trade,
and the English’s dire need for Powhatan corn led to conflict over a scarce food source.
The Armouchiquois and Powhatans possessed limited trade experience and lacked the
communication skills and cultural intermediates that the Mi’kmaq, Maliseet, and Eastern
Abenaki utilized when they established trade alliances with Port Royal and Sagadahoc.
The hunter-gather Mi’kmaq, Eastern Abenaki, and Maliseet were less numerous, lacked
the agriculturists’ intensive use of limited territory, possessing considerable numbers of
valuable furs, and were exceptionally well informed on the culture, intentions, and
language of Europeans.
Scholars often see the small number of France’s North American colonists
requiring the French to establish cooperative Native relations, leading to limited conflict
over land, and helping to facilitate the fur trade.620 Yet Port Royal, Jamestown, and
Sagadahoc all started small and the patterns of French and English Native relations were
620 Paquet and Wallot, “Nouvelle-France/Quebec/Canada : A World of Limited Identities” in Canny and Pagden eds., Colonial Identity in the Atlantic World, 98; Marzagalli, “The French Atlantic World in the Seventeenth and Eighteenth Centuries,” in Canny and Morgan eds., The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World, 240-1.
established before population growth occurred. The French fur trade, predating
colonization, required cooperative Native relations and helped to limit the size of the
French colonies’ populations to maximize profits and avoid conflict with Native allies.
Perhaps the only reason the French developed agriculture in North America was the
availability of land that was not being extensively utilized by their Native allies. The St.
Lawrence region near Quebec had been depopulated prior to French settlement in 1608,
and the Mi’kmaq were relatively tolerant of French agriculture, perhaps due to their large
territory and low population density.621 French-Native cooperation and the emphasis on
the fur trade that would define French North American colonization were facilitated by
the characteristics and actions of the Mi’kmaq and other Native groups the French
interacted with. Port Royal would set this trend and directly influenced the development
of Acadia and Quebec.
Initially the English in Jamestown and Sagadahoc hoped for Native trade alliances
similar to those established in Port Royal. Jamestown’s conflict with the Powhatans and
eventual shift to agriculture represented a break with the previous English trade voyages
and the colony of Sagadahoc. Jamestown’s violent Native relations restricted the colony’s
ability to establish a profitable Native trade, but facilitated the confiscation of Native
lands. In developing agriculture in Jamestown the English learned from the example of
the Powhatans, using lands previously cleared by Native labour to grow established
Native crops such as corn, beans, and tobacco.622 Thus, the English colony of Jamestown
came to reflect the characteristics of the Powhatans in its larger population and
621 Ibid., 236. 622 Rountree and Turner, Before and After Jamestown, 96-7, 103-4.
agricultural focus, just as the French colonies of Port Royal and Quebec came to reflect
the low population and fur trade focus of the Mi’kmaq, Maliseet and Montagnais.
Virginia’s Native relations and those of later English North American colonies
came to resemble Jamestown’s conflict with the Powhatans. To some extent Jamestown
influenced the development of English North American colonization through the literary
accounts of colonists such as John Smith and William Strachey. While it is difficult to
gauge the influence of these published works, major events such as the Powhatans’
assault in 1622 killing 347 colonists were well known in England and would influence
English colonial policy.623 This literature may have had a considerable influence, but
perhaps the same mixture of English and Native characteristics and behaviours which led
to conflict in Jamestown influenced the development of English-Native conflicts in other
areas such as New England.
The importance of Native societies and these societies’ particular experiences in
determining Native-colonist relations demonstrated in Jamestown, Port Royal, and
Sagadahoc are consistent with the records of numerous sixteenth and seventeenth-century
French and English colonies. The French and English colonies of Charles Fort, Fort
Caroline, and Roanoke all experienced conflict with agricultural Native groups south of
the Chesapeake, and Quebec established cooperative relations with the hunter-gather
Natives of the St. Lawrence region.624 The characteristics and actions of Native groups
were central in shaping the larger trajectories of French and English North American
colonization. The scholarship needs to consider the intricate details of French and English
623 Kupperman, The JamesTown Project, 306-9. 624 Quinn, Explorers and Colonies, 260, 264-7; Kupperman, Roanoke: The Abandoned Colony, 63-4, 77,
86; Eccles, The French in North America, 20-25.
Native relations rather than the current overreliance on century and continent spanning
macro patterns. Additionally, scholars must acknowledge the divisions within,
connections between, and limitations of categories such as English, French, and Native.
In the modern era of increasing global connectivity, scholars must acknowledge the
subtleties of divisions within nations and the diversity of connections between nations
that have always existed underneath the shadow of nationalism.
CHAPTER 5: CONCLUSION
The modern world is in the midst of an era of increasing globalization. Trade,
communication, financial, and political networks span the globe and regional events often
have important implications for the daily lives of people around the world. While the
nation-state remains an integral part of the world’s governmental organization,
transnational connections and rising cultural diversity are simultaneously transcending
national divides and increasing individuals’ awareness of the heterogeneity and
regionalism existing within every imperfect nation-state. Rather than being mutually
exclusive, globalism and regionalism can coexist and even promote each other. One may
even speculate that the western world is currently heading towards a post-nationalist
future where national polities will cease to represent the principal government institution
and will be subordinate to international and regional political and cultural associations.
This modern atmosphere of global connectivity has stimulated the study of Western
Europe’s early modern expansion in the Mediterranean and Far East over the last decade.
Scholars should continue this line of enquiry and attempt to supplement these early
modern connections with consideration of the diversity and powerful regionalism within
African, American, Asian, and European groups.
Despite modern globalization and the Atlantic world historiography’s increased
focus on international trade, many scholars of early modern history continue to operate
within modern national frameworks. These national frameworks have led scholars to use
geographic scopes adhering to modern national borders, and these scholars emphasize
colonial ventures associated with the foundations of national empires. Thus, American
scholars neglect the colony of Sagadahoc because of its failure to spawn a lasting colony,
give minimal attention to French colonization efforts they consider distinct from English
North American colonization, and fixate on Jamestown as the beginning of what would
become the British North American colonies and the United States. Similarly Canadian
scholars have extensively studied Quebec as the foundation of Canada while overlooking
the colony of Port Royal and the connections between early seventeenth-century French
and English colonization efforts.
While intra-imperial studies are a key component of the French and English
Atlantic scholarship, inter-imperial studies have been underrepresented both generally
and in the specific context of early seventeenth-century French and English North
American activity.625 A comparative scope is a necessary addition to the largely intra-
imperial scholarship on Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc. These French and
English colonies shared a common heritage of North American activity including the
Newfoundland fishery, privateering against the Spanish West Indies, and seasonal trade
voyages. The scholarship on France’s North American colonization acknowledges the
importance of trade voyages in stimulating the establishment of permanent colonies, and
this study has added a detailed examination of the transition from French trade voyages to
trade colonies, with consideration of the contemporary English transition, which the
scholarship lacked. These various North American precedents have been
underappreciated in the scholarship on English colonization, and even David Quinn, a
leading proponent of England’s North American activity in the sixteenth and early
This study does not seek to discredit the importance of the intra-imperial scholarship, and this thesis largely builds on the work of such studies by adding an inter-imperial comparative component. There is no reason why the scholarship cannot combine elements of intra and inter-imperial studies, and Chapter Two of this thesis is primarily intra-imperial in scope. For a recent discussion of the merits of intra-imperial studies see, Jerry Bannister, “The Oriental Atlantic: governance and regulatory frameworks in the British Atlantic world,” in H.V. Bowen, Elizabeth Mancke, and John G. Reid eds., Britain’s Oceanic Empire: Atlantic and Indian Ocean Worlds, 1550-1850 (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2012), 151-7.
seventeenth centuries, never sought to connect the early seventeenth-century trade
voyages, Sagadahoc, and Jamestown. The competition between France and England in
the early seventeenth century was an important stimulus in the renewal of each country’s
colonization efforts, and a comparative study of Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc
provides new insight into the perceptions, tactics, and objectives of the groups involved
in these ventures. The North American activity of France and England in the late
sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries was only one of many precedents leading to the
establishment of Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc, but it had a powerful influence
on the objectives and perceptions of French and English colonists which has been
understudied within the scholarship.
Many scholars operate within national frameworks focused on the French or
English in the late sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries despite the fact that
nationalism was still in a nascent form during this era. Early seventeenth-century
nationalism was intended to unite diverse peoples under the rule of common Monarchs
using the idealized concepts of a shared history, language, and common national goals.626
This early nationalism was largely restricted to official documents and written accounts,
and had yet to surpass the existing regionalism and transnational connections in both
France and England. In the late sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries France and
England were composite monarchies consisting of diverse groups united by their
common loyalty to their monarchs. The political associations of France and England
coexisted with regional loyalties and identities, and competition between France and
626 Anthony and Nicholas Canny, “Afterword: From Identity to Independence,” in Canny and Pagden eds., Colonial Identity in the Atlantic World, 1500-1800, 271; Braddick, "Civility and Authority,” in Armitage and Braddick eds., The British Atlantic World, 93-4; Elizabeth Mancke, “Empire and State,” in Armitage and Braddick eds., The British Atlantic World, 195-6.
England was accompanied by competition among the regional interests within France and
England. The divide between the English West Country and the London-dominated east
of England was great enough to necessitate two distinct colonization efforts in the
London and Plymouth Virginia Companies. Even within regions there were fierce
rivalries between cities, and the rising influence of Plymouth was opposed by Bristol and
Exeter. French regionalism was even more pronounced, and the French free traders led
by the merchants of Saint-Malo opposed and violated the monopolies of Chauvin, Chaste,
and de Mons throughout the early seventeenth century. De Mons’ trade company was
defined by its members’ regional associations, but de Mons’ company also required
cooperation between diverse groups of Frenchmen from across northern and coastal
France. Thus, the dual Virginia Companies and de Mons’ trade company were not clear-
cut national colonization efforts but dynamic combinations of transnational, national, and
regional cooperation and competition.
Within the context of early seventeenth-century French and English North
American colonization, regional, national, and transnational frameworks are all equally
necessary in explaining Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc. The establishment of
North American trade colonies was a major hallmark in the expansion of the French and
English empires during the seventeenth century, and the regional and transnational
influences on these imperial expansions require more scholarly investigation. Many
scholars seek to pinpoint the origins of French and English nationalism in the late
sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries, but scholars should also explore the continued
regional and transnational limits of nationalism in the seventeenth and eighteenth
centuries.627 In the early seventeenth century the national divisions and imperial
competition between England and France had not yet solidified. British and French
Atlantic scholars tend to focus on the eighteenth-century national and imperial
competition between France and Britain and projects these themes backwards into the
seventeenth and sixteenth centuries. A large-scale comparative study exploring the
development of this national and imperial competition from a sixteenth and early
seventeenth-century perspective, when regionalism and transnational connections
superseded nationalism, would be a valuable counterpart to the existing scholarship.
Many studies looking at the long-term development of French and English
colonies in North America during the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries tend to depict
the Natives of North America as a relatively cohesive group sharing common traits,
similar to the French and English, but this was not strictly accurate in the early
seventeenth century.628 In the early seventeenth century the Mi’kmaq, Maliseet, Eastern
Abenaki, Armouchiquois, and Powhatans were all distinct societies with their own
cultures, social organizations, and unique formative experiences. Like the French and
English these Natives were not uniform, and there were regional divisions within each of
these groups. The French used the general term Armouchiquois when these agricultural
peoples of southern New England constituted many distinct groups, and the English
627 Ibid,195-6; Edward L. Bond, Damned Souls in a Tobacco Company: Religion in Seventeenth-Century Virginia (Macon: Mercer University Press, 2000), 5-11; Seed, Ceremonies of Possession, 10-12; Burnard, “The British Atlantic.” in Greene and Morgan eds., Atlantic History: A Critical Appraisal, 117-119.
628 For two prominent examples of this pan-Native American framework see, Richter, Facing East from Indian Country; Calloway, New Worlds for All.
depicted the Powhatans as a united kingdom when they were in fact a loose confederation
of semi-independent groups.629
The biased nature of surviving sources originating almost exclusively from
European authors writing for European audiences will always be a serious obstacle for
scholars seeking to determine the actions, perspectives, and historical contributions of
Native Americans. The divergence in French and English relations with Native groups is
nearly universally explained by the cultural and national identities of the French and
English. This Eurocentric interpretation of colonist-Native relations is largely the result
of primary source limitations. Yet, using comparative Native and comparative
colonization frameworks provides innovative insight into the relations between colonists
and Natives, and highlights the importance of Native societies in helping to shape
colonist-Native relations both within and beyond the early seventeenth century.
The colonies of Sagadahoc and Port Royal possessed similarly mixed records of
Native relations which combined cooperative trade, colonist-Native hostility, and
occasional violence. The similarities between these two colonies’ Native relations were
the result of their common objectives and their interaction with related Native groups
who possessed similar cultures and past experiences with Europeans. The violent
English-Powhatan relations in early Jamestown can only be partly explained by the
objectives, formative experiences, and actions of the English. In Port Royal, Jamestown,
and Sagadahoc a combination of colonists and Natives’ actions and characteristics
629 Champlain, Vol. I, 325; Rountree, and Turner, Before and After Jamestown, 122; Gallivan, James River Chiefdoms, 2.
resulted in colonist-Native relations and helped to shape the development of French and
English North American colonization in Acadia, Virginia, and New France.
The beginnings of French and English North American colonization in the early
seventeenth century are often addressed by scholars seeking to fit these events with
developments later in the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries. This has led many
scholars to expect benign French-Native relations and antagonistic English-Native
relations which are contradicted by the similar Native relations experienced in French and
English trade voyages, Port Royal, Sagadahoc, and even between Captain Newport and
the Powhatans in Jamestown. Similarly, the French fur trade and the English focus on
agriculture have shaped scholars’ interpretations of French and English colonial
objectives and tactics in the early seventeenth century, conflicting with the similar
economic goals of these contemporary colonization efforts. The established interpretive
frameworks within the historiography on French and English colonization are essential
for the creation of a coherent Atlantic history narrative spanning several continents and
centuries, but due to their size these macro frameworks have limitations and scholars
must take care to reconcile these frameworks with the specific context of their studies.
Interpretive frameworks should be developed based on the detailed study of specific
historical events rather than resulting in the distortion of historic events to fit a larger
interpretative model.
The use of both comparative colonization and comparative Native frameworks
creates a more comprehensive context in which to consider the development of French
and English North American expansion. This study has stressed the importance of
historical context, and has sought to determine the importance of diverse and competing
elements of this context by virtue of their temporal, geographic, interpersonal, and
literary connections. Throughout this study careful consideration has been given to the
chronology of events within the primary timeframe of 1598-1609, and the Atlantic
history scholarship would benefit from a greater consideration of chronology and a more
detailed application of historical context. While this study focuses on the French and
English transition from trade voyages to trade colonies and these colonies’ interactions
with Native groups, these events and themes were only a small part of much larger
seventeenth century developments. This study has sought to fill a gap within the
scholarship rather than discredit existing studies, and provides a small corrective for the
immense scholarship on French and English colonization.
The strength of this study’s in-depth analysis utilizing sources relating to France
and England’s North American activity in the late sixteenth and early seventeenth
centuries is also its primary limitation. The French and English trade voyages, Port
Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc were preceded by a century of North American
activity including countless voyages and numerous colonies, and these colonies mark the
beginning of France and England’s seventeenth century North American colonization.
French and English activity would continue in Acadia, Virginia, and along the coast of
New England without pause. The mixture of national competition, transnational
connections, regional divisions, and colonist-Native interaction expanded far beyond this
short era discussing Port Royal, Jamestown, and Sagadahoc. In 1613 Captain Samuel
Argall would lead an English attack from Virginia against the French colonization efforts
in Acadia with the help of Native information; destroying the second colony of Port
Royal and taking a number of Frenchmen to Jamestown.630 In 1624 the French and
English both colonized the island of Saint Kitts where they experienced complex
relations with each other and the Natives groups of the West Indies.631 The larger history
of French and English North American expansion throughout the seventeenth century is
ripe for studies combining comparative colonization with comparative Native
approaches.
630 Thorpr, “Equals of the King,” 3-4; Jones, Gentlemen and Jesuits, 235-7; Lescarbot, Vol. III, 68. Lescarbot claims it was the Jesuit Father Biard and not a Native informant how helped the English.
631 Hilary Beckles, “Kalinago (Carib) Resistance to European Colonisation of the Caribbean,” in Alan Gregor Cobley ed., Crossroads of Empire: The Europe-Caribbean Connection, 1492-1992 (Bridgetown: University of the West Indies, 1994), 28.
Neal Salisbury, Manitou and Pro(Oxford University Press, 1982), Figure de la Terre Neuve GrandeBourque, Steven L Cox, and Ruth(Lincoln: University of Nebraska
ovidence: Indians, Europeans and the making of New Eng 15, John Smith, “A Map of Virginia,” 1612, Marc Lescar
e Riviere de Canada et Cotes del’ocean en la Nouvelle Frah Holmes Whitehead, Twelve Thousand Years: Americana Press, 2001), 114. Made with Natural Earth Free Vector
gland, 1500-1643 rbot, “Marcus Lescarbot, ance,” 1609 In Bruce J. n Indians in Maine
and Raster data.
Amenquin: Eastern Abenaki Sagamore, visited Sagadahoc in 1607 with Nahanda and the representative of Bashabes.
Gabriel Archer: A lawyer by training with the rank of captain, Archer wrote an unpublished account of the Gosnold voyage. Archer was the secretary of Jamestown and became a member of the Jamestown council.
Samuel Argall: English captain, pioneered the direct route to Virginia in 1609 via the Azores Islands. Argall Would go on to attack the colony of Port Royal in 1613.
Armouchiquois: A diverse group of agriculturalist Native groups living south of the Saco River as far as Cape Cod. Armouchiquois was a general Mi’kmaq and Maliseet term adopted by the French rather than the actual name of these groups.
Arrohateck: A village of the Powhatans on the upper James River, the Arrohateck established peaceful trade relations with Captain Newport’s expedition in 1607.
Bashabes: Sagamore of the Eastern Abenaki of Penobscot River, and nominal leader of the Eastern Abenaki between the Saco and Penobscot Rivers.
Stephen Bellinger: A French merchant of Rouen, operated a 1584 trade voyage to Norumbega which he reported to his friend Richard Hakluyt the younger.
Pierre Biard: A Jesuit Priest, Biard was present in Acadia as part of Poutrincourt’s second colony of Port Royal in 1611 and published an account of the colony.
Stevan Bocall: A French Basque pilot involved in English fishing and whaling activity in the Gulf of St. Lawrence during the 1590’s.
John Brereton: The chaplain during the 1602 Gosnold voyage, he wrote an account of the voyage published as a promotional pamphlet.
Thomas Canner: A member of the Bartholomew Gilbert voyage to southern Virginia in 1603, Canner wrote an account of the voyage.
Jacques Cartier: French explorer from Saint-Malo, Cartier conducted voyages exploring the St. Lawrence in 1534-1542. The accounts of Cartier’s voyages were influential in French and English North American activity.
Henry Challons: Captain of the Richard the 1606 Plymouth Company ship captured by the Spanish.
Samuel de Champlain: A veteran of the French civil war, Champlain was a key observer of French trade voyages and Port Royal before leading Quebec himself in 1608.
Aymar de Chase: Successor to Chauvin’s monopoly, Chaste operated a single season of the fur trade in 1603 before his death.
Pierre de Chauvin: A French nobleman, granted a fur trade monopoly in New France by King Henri from 1600-1603.
Chawonock: An Algonquin Native groups living to the south of the Powhatans.
Chesapeakes: An Algonquin group south of the Powhatans who were conquered by the Powhatans soon after the establishment of Jamestown.
Chevailer: A member of de Mons’ trade company.
Walter Cope: A political figure and member of the London Company, a number of correspondences of Cope’s discussing Jamestown have survived.
Chkoudun: A leader of the Maliseet, Chkoudun warned Lescarbot that Membertou planned to betray the French in 1607.
Robert Davis: The man identified as the author of the Davis Journal, the main source on the Sagadahoc colony. Davis may have been a pilot or ship’s captain, but his exact identity is unknown.
Eastern Abenaki: An Algonquin peoples inhabiting the area of modern Maine.
Bartholomew Gilbert: A member of the Gosnold voyage to northern Virginia in 1602, Gilbert captained his own voyage to southern Virginia under the sponsorship of Walter Raleigh in 1603. Gilbert was a London resident and had no connection to the West Country Gilbert family.
Raleigh Gilbert: Son of Sir Humphrey Gilbert, Admiral of Sagadahoc, and the second President of the colony. Gilbert abandoned the colony to claim his inheritance in 1608.
Ferdinando Gorges: Commander of Plymouth Fort, hosted the Eastern Abenaki captives of the Waymouth voyage in 1605-1606. Was a central figure in the Plymouth Company.
Bartholomew Gosnold: Leader of the 1602 trade voyage to northern Virginia, Gosnold became an advocate for colonization in London, acted as a recruiter for the London Company, and was a member of the Jamestown Council in 1607.
Thomas Harriot: A member of the first English colony of Roanoke, wrote extensively on the colony and the local Algonquin peoples.
Richard Hakluyt the Younger: Reverend Hakluyt was involved in promoting English North American activities including the Gosnold, Pring, and Waymouth voyages before becoming a member of the London Virginia Company.
Edward Hayes: An English promoter of North American colonization, Hayes wrote a treatise on the Northwest Passage published in 1602 and submitted a plan for a publicly funded colonization effort to the Earl of Salisbury in 1606.
Jamestown Council: Ruling council of Jamestown, originally consisted of seven men including: Wingfield, Gosnold, Martin, Ratcliffe, Kendall, Smith, and Newport.
Marc Lescarbot: A lawyer by training, Lescarbot oversaw Port Royal as a subordinate of Poutrincourt in 1606. A noted author, Lescarbot wrote extensively on French colonization.
London Council: The ruling body of the London Virginia Company.
Samuel Mace: A veteran of numerous trade voyages to southern Virginia in 1600-1603. Many of these voyages have left little or no surviving record besides the note in the Brereton Pamphlet.
Maliseet (Passamaquoddy): An Algonquin peoples inhabiting the area between the St. John and Penobscot Rivers. The Maliseet had close ties to the Mi’kmaq in the era of Port Royal.
Mangoages: A Native groups living to the south of the Powhatans.
John Martin: A member of the 1602 Gosnold voyage, Martin had many merchant connections in London and within the London Company. Martin served as one of the original members of the Jamestown Council in 1607, and was active in Virginia until at least 1616.
Mawooshen: Eastern Abenaki homeland between the Penobscot and Saco Rivers as described by the five Eastern Abenaki captives of the Waymouth voyage in 1606-1606.
Membertou: Leader of the Mi’kmaq group who lived near the Port Royal in 1605-7. Membertou spent a great deal of time with the French at Port Royal.
Pedro Menéndez: Commander of Spanish expedition to the Chesapeake in 1572, responsible for the brutal retaliation against the Chesapeake Natives for the murder of the Jesuit Mission.
Messamouet: leader of the Mi’kmaq of La Have, Messamouet had been to France and was essential as a guide and interpreter for the French colonists in Port Royal.
Meteourmite: Sagamore of an Eastern Abenaki village on the Kennebec River, reported English-Eastern Abenaki conflict during the Sagadahoc colony to Father Biard in 1612.
Mi’kmaq: An Algonquin people inhabiting the area of modern Nova Scotia, Cape Breton, and Prince Edward Island.
Monacans: A Siouan people living in the piedmont of the southern Chesapeake, reported to be the enemies of the Powhatans.
Pierre Du Gua de Mons: a Huguenot nobleman who first visited the St. Lawrence as part of the Chauvin voyage in 1600. De Mons was central in founding Port Royal and Quebec.
Montagnais: An Innu people inhabiting the region near the St. Lawrence River.
Nahanda: Sagamore of the Pemiquid band of Eastern Abenaki, Captured by George Waymouth in 1605 and returned to Pemiquid by the Hanham-Pring voyage in 1606.
Naviran: A member of the Arrohateck Powhatans, Naviran acted as a guide and helped Gabriel Archer to acquire a few Algonquin words during Newport’s 1607 expedition.
Christopher Newport: An experienced pioneer, Admiral of Virginia, and an important figure in Jamestown.
Paspahegh: A village of the Powhatans on the north side of the James River, Jamestown was established on Paspahegh land.
Pemiquid band: The Eastern Abenaki band headed by Nahanda with close ties to Sagadahoc, their village was located approximately 10 miles north of Sagadahoc.
George Percy: An original Jamestown colonist who wrote an account of the colony’s early events.
Francis Popham: The son of John Popham, Francis continued to send trade and fishing voyages to northern Virginia after the Sagadahoc colony’s failure in 1608.
George Popham: First President of the Sagadahoc colony and a relation of the Plymouth Company’s chief investor Lord Chief Justice Popham, George died during the winter of 1607-8.
Chief Justice John Popham: The central investor in the Plymouth Virginia Company, Popham’s death reported to the Sagadahoc colonists in 1608 contributed to the colony’s abandonment.
Gravé Du Pont: A veteran of the fur trade commanding many voyages to the St. Lawrence and Acadia as early as 1599, Gravé was a central figure in Port Royal.
Walter Russell: A Jamestown colonist, Smith reportedly used his journal for his The Proceedings.
Sabenoa: Sagamore of an Eastern Abenaki village on the Kennebec River and self-proclaimed lord of the Kennebec River.
Sieur de Poutrincourt: A nobleman and veteran of the French civil war. Poutrincourt oversaw Port Royal in 1606-7, and re-established the colony in 1610.
Paramount Chief Powhatan (Wahunsonacock): Head of the Powhatan confederation, Powhatan oversaw the conquest of the southern Chesapeake prior to the establishment of Jamestown.
Powhatans: A confederation of 30 distinct Algonquin groups in the southern Chesapeake.
Juan Rogel: A member of the Spanish expedition to the Chesapeake in 1572 responsible for the brutal retaliation against the Chesapeake Natives for the murder of the Jesuit Mission.
Sieur de Prevert: Commanded the 1603 fur trade voyage to Acadia as part of the Chaste monopoly.
Martin Pring: Commander of the 1603 trade voyage to northern Virginia, a member of the Plymouth Company, and captain of the Hanham-Pring voyage to northern Virginia in 1606.
Quiyoughquohanock: A Powhatan group south of the James River.
John Ratcliffe (Sicklemore): An original Jamestown Council member and the colony’s second President.
La Roche: A French nobleman with connections to North American trade, La Roche founded a colony on Sable Island which lasted from 1600-1603.
James Rosier: The cape merchant during the Waymouth voyage, Rosier wrote the published account of the voyage. Rosier was a Catholic and became a Jesuit Priest.
Royal Council of Virginia: Council consisting of 15 representatives of the London Company and 10 representatives of the Plymouth Company intended to police the two companies.
Sable Island: A small French colony offshore of Acadia operating from 1600-1603.
Earl of Salisbury (Robert Cecil): Key political leader during the early reign of King James I. Many of the surviving correspondences of the London and Plymouth Companies were addressed to Salisbury.
Secodun: A prominent member of the Maliseet of the St. John River, acted as a guide and ally to the French in Port Royal and took part in the French conflict with the Armouchiquois.
Skidwarres: Member of the Pemiquid band of Eastern Abenaki, captured by Waymouth in 1605 and returned to Pemiquid by Popham and Gilbert in 1607.
Thomas Studley: A Jamestown colonist, Smith reportedly used his journal for his The Proceedings.
Tadoussac: An established French fur trade center near the mouth of the St. Lawrence River.
John Smith: An original member of the Jamestown council, Smith was an experienced soldier and was a central figure in Jamestown’s Native relations during 1607-1609.
(Hernando) Fernando de Soto: A Spanish conquistador, de Soto led an ill fated expedition into the American southeast during 1539-1541.
William Strachey: A Jamestown colonists who wrote extensively on the colony’s history beginning in 1609, Strachey published an important account of the Sagadahoc colony.
Anas Todkill: A Jamestown colonist, Smith reportedly used his journal for his The Proceedings.
George Waymouth: Leader of the 1605 voyage to northern Virginia, captured five Eastern Abenaki including Nahanda and Skidwarres who were left with Gorges in Plymouth.
Edward Maria Wingfield: First President of Jamestown, Wingfield was a major investor in the London Company and an experienced soldier.
Archer, Gabriel. “A Letter of M. Gabriel Archer touching the Voyage of the Fleet of ships, which arriued at Virginia, without Sir Tho. Gates, and Sir George Summers, 31 August 1609.” In Philip L. Barbour. The Jamestown Voyages Under the First Charter, 1606-1609. Volume II. 2879-283. London: published for the Hakluyt Society,1969.
Archer, Gabriel. “A relation of the Discovery of our River, from James Forte into the Maine: made by Captain Christofer Newport.” In Philip L. Barbour. The Jamestown Voyages Under the First Charter, 1606-1609. Volume I. 80-98. London: published for the Hakluyt Society,1969.
Archer, Gabriel. “The Description of the now discovered River and Country of Virginia; with the Likelyhood of ensuing ritches by Englands ayd and industry.” In NAW Volume 5. 274-276.
Archer, Gabriel. “The relations of Captain Gosnold's Voyage to the North part of Virginia.” In ENEV. 112-138.
Beare, James. World Map. 1578 [Map] In Peter Whitfield. New Found Lands: Maps in the History of Exploration. 50. London: British Library, 1998.
Biard, Pierre. “Letter from Father Pierre Biard to the Reverend Father Provincial, at Paris, January 1612.” In Auguste Carayon.
. 44-76. Paris: L'ecureux Libraire, 1864.
Biard, Pierre. “Relation of New France.” In Reuben Gold Thwaites. The Jesuit Relations and Allied Documents Travels and Explorations of the Jesuit Missionaries in New France 1610—1791. Volume 3. 36-282. Cleveland: The Burrows Brothers, 1898.
Brereton, John. “A Briefe and True Relation of the discouerie of the North part of Virginia.” In ENEV. 143-165.
Canner, Thomas. “Thomas Canner’s Account of Bartholomew Gilbert’s Voyage in search of Chesapeake Bay.” In NAW Volume 5. 163-166.
Carleton, Dudley. “Dudly Carleton to Chamberlain, 18 August 1607.” In Barbour Philip L. Barbour. The Jamestown Voyages Under the First Charter, 1606-1609. Volume I. 113. London: published for the Hakluyt Society,1969.
Champlain, Samuel. Des Sauvages. In DSOD. 232-365.
Champlain, Samuel. Map of 1632. 1632 [Map] In Derek Hayes. Historical Atlas of Canada: Canada's History Illustrated with Original Maps. 55.Vancouver: Douglas & McIntyre, 2002.
Champlain, Samuel, Henry Percival Biggar et al. The works of Samuel de Champlain. Volume I. Toronto: Champlain Society, 1922.
Champlain, Samuel, Henry Percival Biggar et al. The works of Samuel de Champlain. Volume III. Toronto: Champlain Society, 1936.
Cope, Walter. “Sir Walter Cope to Lord Salisbury,12 August 1607.” In Philip L. Barbour. The Jamestown Voyages Under the First Charter, 1606-1609. Volume I. 108-110. London: published for the Hakluyt Society,1969.
Cope,Walter. “Sir Walter Cope to Lord Salisbury, 12 August 1607.” In Philip L. Barbour. The Jamestown Voyages Under the First Charter, 1606-1609. Volume I. 110. London: published for the Hakluyt Society,1969.
Cope, Walter. “Sir Walter Cope to Lord Salisbury, 13 August 1607.” In Philip L. Barbour. The Jamestown Voyages Under the First Charter, 1606-1609. Volume I. 111. London: published for the Hakluyt Society,1969.
Cope, Walter. “Sir Walter Cope to the Earl of Salisbury, December 1605 – January 1606.” In ENEV. 378.
Cornwallis, Charles.“Sir Charles Cornwallis to the Earl of Salisbury, 24 May 1607.” In NAW Volume 3. 415-416.
Council of New England. “Retrospect by the Council of New England on the events of 1606-8.” In ENEV. 336-338.
Council of Virginia, “Coppie of a letter from Virginia, 22 June 1607.” In Philip L. Barbour. The Jamestown Voyages Under the First Charter, 1606-1609. Volume I. 78-80. London: published for the Hakluyt Society,1969.
Davis, Robert.“The Relation of a Voyage unto New-England’ Began from the Lizard, ye first of June 1607.” In ENEV. 416-441.
Ecixa, Francisco Fernandes. “Proceedings in the case of the Castor and Pollux: Declaration of the captain, April 1605.” In NAW Volume 5. 111-113.
Ferrar, John. Virginia. 1651 [Map] In Peter Whitfield. New Found Lands: Maps in the History of Exploration. 77. London: British Library, 1998.
Gilbert, Humphrey. A discoverie for a New Passage to Cataia. 1576 [Map] In Emerson W. Baker. American Beginnings: Exploration, Culture, and Cartography in the Land of Norumbega. 27. Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 1994.
Gorges, Ferdinando. A briefe narration of the original undertaking of the advancement of plantations into the parts of America.” In ENEV. 340-347.
Gorges, Ferdinando.“Sir Ferdinando Gorges to Henry Challons, 13 March 1607.” In NAW Volume 3. 412-413.
Gorges, Ferdinando.“Sir Ferdinando Gorges to the Earl of Salisbury, 7 August 1607.” In NAW Volume 3. 414.
Gorges, Ferdinando “Sir Ferdinando Gorges to the earl of Salibury, May 1606.” In ENEV. 388-389.
Gorges, Ferdinando.“Sir Ferdinando Gorges to the Earl of Salisbury, reporting the dispatch of additional ships to the colony, 20 March 1608.” In ENEV. 458-9.
Gorges, Ferdinando. “Sir Ferdinando Gorges to the Earl of Salisbury, reporting the return of a vessel from North Virginia, 1 December 1607.” In ENEV. 447-449.
Gorges, Ferdinando. “Sir Ferdinando Gorges to the Earl of Salisbury, reporting the return of the Gifte of God, 7 February 1608.” In ENEV. 455-458.
Gosnold, Bartholomew. “Bartholomew Gosnold to Anthony Gosnold, 7 September 1602.” In ENEV. 208-211.
Hakluyt, Richard the Younger. “Certaine brriefe testimonies touching sundry rich mines of Gold, Siluer, and Copper, in part found and in part constantly heard of, in North Florida.” In ENEV. 201-203.
Hakluyt, Richard the Younger. “A Discourse Concerning Western Planting.” In NAW Volume 3. 71-123.
Hamor, Ralph.“A True Discourse of the Present Estate of Virginia.” In James P. P. Horn. Captain John Smith: Writings With Other Narratives of Roanoke, Jamestown, and the First English Settlement of America. 1115-1173. New York: Library of America, 2007.
Hayes, Edward. “A Treatise, conteining important inducements for the plating in these parts, and finding a passage that way to the South sea and China.” In ENEV. 167-180.
Hayes, Edwards and Thomas Hayes. “Edward and Thomas Hayes to the Earl of Salsibury, March 25-April 9 1606.” In NAW Volume 5. 167.
Hudson, Henry. “Henry Hudson’s Journal records the discovery of Hudson Strait, April 17- August 7 1610.” In David B. Quinn, Alison M. Quinn, and Susan Hillier. New American World: A Documentary History of North America to 1612: Volume 4: Newfoundland from Fishery to Colony. Northwest Passage Searches. New York: Arno Press, 1979. 277-278.
Lescarbot, Marc, Henry Percival Biggar, and W. L. Grant. History of New France. Volume I. Toronto: Champlain Society, 1907.
Lescarbot, Marc, Henry Percival Biggar, and W. L. Grant. History of New France. Volume II. Toronto: Champlain Society, 1911.
Lescarbot, Marc, Henry Percival Biggar, and W. L. Grant. History of New France. Volume III. Toronto: Champlain Society, 1914.
Mathewe, Walter. “Walter Mathewe, for Plymouth Corporation, to earl of Salisbury, May 1606.” In ENEV. 384-385.
Mercator, Michael. America Sive India Nova. 1595 [Map] In Emerson W. Baker. American Beginnings: Exploration, Culture, and Cartography in the Land of Norumbega. 47. Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 1994.
Newport, Christopher. “Coppie of a Letter to ye Lord of Salisburie from Captain Newport ye 29th of Julie 1607, from Plimouth.” In Philip L. Barbour. The Jamestown Voyages Under the First Charter, 1606-1609. Volume I. 76-77. London: published for the Hakluyt Society,1969.
Pain, James. “Voyage of the Discovery to and from Virginia.” In NAW Volume 3. 307-8.
Percy, George. “A Discourse of the Plantation of the Southern Colonie in Virginia.” In NAW Volume 5. 273.
Percy, George. “A Trewe Relacyon.” In James Horn. Captain John Smith: Writings with Other Narratives or Roanoke, Jamestown, and the First English Settlement of America.1093 1115. New York: Literary Classics, 2007.
Perkins, Francis. “Francis Perkins in Jamestown to a Friend in England, 28 March 1608.” In Philip L. Barbour. The Jamestown Voyages Under the First Charter, 1606-1609. Volume I. 158-163. London: published for the Hakluyt Society, 1969.
Popham, George. “Captain George Popham to King James I, from Fort St. George, 13 December 1607.” In ENEV. 452-455.
Poutrincourt, Jean Biencourt. “Complaint made before the Judge of the Admiralty of Guienne, June 18th 1614.” In Lescarbot. Volume III. 68-71.
Poutrincourt, Jean Biencourt. “Poutrincourt’s Letter to Marc Lescarbot, 1614.” In Lescarbot. Volume III. 66-67.
Purchase, Samuel. “North Virginia Voyages, 1606-1608.” In ENEV. 347-351.
Ralegh, Walter. “Sir Walter Ralegh to Sir Robert Cecil, 21 August 1602.” In ENEV. 205-207.
Rogel, Juan. “Letter of Juan Rogel to Francis Borgia, From the Bay of the Mother of God, August 28, 1572.” In E. I. Devitt. "Axacan: The Martyrs of the Rappahannock." ACHS 19 (1908):10-17.
Rosier, James. “A Trve Relation of the most prosperous voyage made this present yeere 1605, by Captaine George Waymouth, in the Discouery of the land of Virginia.” In ENEV. 251-311.
Royal Council of Virginia. “The Royal Council for Virginia to Plymouth Corporation, 17 February 1609.” In ENEV. 466-468.
Rrogues, Beltran and Pedro de Ynarra. “Proceedings in the case of the Castor and Pollux: Declaration of the armador, April 1605.” In NAW Volume 5. 113-116.
Smith, John. “A Description of New England.” In James P. P. Horn. Captain John Smith: Writings With Other Narratives of Roanoke, Jamestown, and the First English Settlement of America. 119-174. New York: Library of America, 2007.
Smith, John. “A True Relation.” In James P. P. Horn. Captain John Smith: Writings With Other Narratives of Roanoke, Jamestown, and the First English Settlement of America. 1-36. New York: Library of America, 2007.
Smith, John. “The Proceedings of the English Colony in Virginia, 1612.” In NAW Volume 5. 310-346.
Smith, John. “The Proceedings of the English Colonie in Virginia, 1612.” In James Horn. Captain John Smith: Writings with Other Narratives or Roanoke, Jamestown, and the First English Settlement of America. 37-118. New York: Literary Classics, 2007.
Smith, John. The True Travels. In James Horn. Captain John Smith: Writings with Other Narratives or Roanoke, Jamestown, and the First English Settlement of America. 671-770. New York: Literary Classics, 2007.
Smith, John and William Symonds. A Map of Virginia. With a Description of the Covntrey, the Commodities, People, Government and Religion. Amsterdam: Theatrum Orbis Terrarum, 1973.
Strachey, William. “The historie of trauaile into Virginia Britania: The narrative of the North Virginia voyage and colony, 1607-8.” In ENEV. 398-416.
The London Council, “Instructions given by way of advice.” In Philip L. Barbour. The Jamestown Voyages Under the First Charter, 1606-1609. Volume I. 49-54. London: published for the Hakluyt Society,1969.
White, John. “Narrative of the 1590 Voyage.” In James P. P. Horn. Captain John Smith: Writings With Other Narratives of Roanoke, Jamestown, and the First English Settlement of America. 906-919.New York: Library of America, 2007.
Wingfield, Edward M. “Edward Maria Wingfield’s replies to the charges made against him in Virginia, May 1608.” In NAW Volume 5. 277-285.
Wytfliet, Cornelius. Norumbega et Virginia. 1597 [Map] In Emerson W. Baker. American Beginnings: Exploration, Culture, and Cartography in the Land of Norumbega. 86-87. Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 1994.
“A briefe Note of the sending another barke this present yeere 1602 by the honorable knight SIR WALTER RALEGH for the searching out of his Colonie in Virginia.” In ENEV. 166-167.
“A briefe relation of the discovery and plantation of New-England.” In NAW Volume 3. 420.
“A Voyage set Out from the Citie of Bristoll at the charge of the chiefest Merchants and Inhabitants of the said Citie with a small Ship and a Barke for the discouerie of the North Part of Virginia in the yeere 1603, Vnder the command of Martin Pringe.” In ENEV. 214-230.
“Briefe intelligence from Virginia by Letters, a supplement of French-Virginian Occurrants, 1624.” In Samuel Purchas. Hakluytus Posthumus or Purchas His Pilgrimes. Volume XIX. 207-217. Glasgow: MacMillan and Co.,1891.
“Bristol Common Council opens subscriptions for the north Virginia venture, April 1606.” In ENEV. 381-383.
“Commission from Lord High Admiral, 1603.” In Lescarbot. Volume II. 217-220.
“Deposition of Nicholas Hind, master of the Richard in the High Court of Admiralty, 16 February 1607.” In ENEV. 356-360.
“Eastern Abenaki captives describe their country of Mawooshen.” In ENEV. 470-6.
“Enlargement of the royal council for Virginia, March 9 1607.” In NAW Volume 5. 198-200.
“Examination of John Deaman, seaman, 10 June 1608.” In ENEV. 463.
“Examination of Lancelot Booker, cooper, 10 June 1608.” In ENEV. 462-3.
“Exeter City Chamber refuses to participate in the voyage, March 1606.” In ENEV. 379-383.
“Extract from the Decrees of the Council of State, March 1603.” In DSOD. 207.
“Factum of the Merchants of Saint-Malo, January 1613.” In DSOD. 197-203.
“Instructions for the Virginia Company, November 20 1606.” In NAW Volume 5. 200-205.
“King Henri to Rouen, 1605.” In Lescarbot. Volume II. 224-5.
“News from Paris, 1608.” In Philip L. Barbour. The Jamestown Voyages Under the First Charter, 1606-1609. Volume I. 234-235. London: published for the Hakluyt Society, 1969.
“Payment of Various Sums to Jean Hardy and Samuel de Champlain, for Their Wages and Traveling Expenses in the Royal Army of Brittany, March 1595 – April 1597.” In DSOD. 163-165.
“Prohibition issued by the King, 1603.” In Lescarbot. Volume II. 221-223.
“Reasons to move the High Court of Parlament to raise a stocke for the maintaining of a Collonie in Virginia.” In NAW Volume 5. 168-170.
“Samuel Argall’s fishing voyage off the New England coast, June 19 – August 31 1610.” In NAW Volume 3. 302-307.
“The Second Virginia Charter, the first to the London Company alone, 23 May 1609.” In NAW Volume 5. 205-212.
“The first Virginia Charter of April 10, 1606.” In NAW Volume 5. 191-197.
“The King’s Commission to Monsieur de Monts for the colonisation of the lands of La Cadie, 1603.” In Lescarbot. Volume II. 211-216.
“The Kings Declaration, 1603.” In Lescarbot. Volume II. 223-226.
Allen, John L. “The indrawing sea : imagination and experience in the search for the Northwest Passage, 1497-1632.” In Emerson W. Baker. American Beginnings: Exploration, Culture, and Cartography in the Land of Norumbega. University of Nebraska Press, 1994.
Andrews, Kenneth R. Elizabethan Privateering; English Privateering During the Spanish War 1585-1603. Cambridge: University Press, 1964.
Appelbaum, Robert. “Hunger in Early Virginia: Indians and English Facing Off over Excess, Want, and Need.” In Robert Appelbaum and John W. Sweet. Envisioning an English Empire. 195-216. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 2005.
Augustine, Stephen J. Mi’kmaq & Maliseet cultural ancestral material : national collections from the Canadian Museum of Civilization. Gatineau: Candian Museum of Civilization, 2005.
Axtell, James. After Columbus: Essays in the Ethnohistory of Colonial North America. New York: Oxford University Press, 1988.
Axtell, James. The European and the Indian: Essays in the Ethnohistory of Colonial North America. New York: Oxford University Press, 1981.
Axtell, James. “The Exploration of Norumbega: Native Perspectives.” In Emerson W. Baker. American Beginnings: Exploration, Culture, and Cartography in the Land of Norumbega. Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 1994.
Axtell, James. The Invasion Within: The Contest of Cultures in Colonial North America. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1986.
Banerjee, Pompa. “The White Othello: Turkey and Virginia in John Smith’s True Travels.” In Robert Appelbaum and John W. Sweet. Envisioning an English Empire. 135-151. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 2005.
Bannister, Jerry. “The Oriental Atlantic: governance and regulatory frameworks in the British Atlantic world.” In H.V. Bowen, Elizabeth Mancke, and John G. Reid. Britain’s Oceanic Empire: Atlantic and Indian Ocean Worlds, 1550-1850. 151-176. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2012.
Barbour, Philip L. “Captain George Kendall: Mutineer or Intelligencer?” The Virginia Magazine of History and Biography 70, 3 (July, 1962): 21-67.
Barbour, Philip L. The Jamestown Voyages Under the First Charter, 1606-1609: Documents Relating to the Foundation of Jamestown and the History of the Jamestown Colony Up to the Departure of Captain John Smith, Last President of the Council in Virginia Under the First Charter, Early in October 1609. Volume I-II. London: Hakluyt Society, 1969.
Beckles, Hilary. “Kalinago (Carib) Resistance to European Colonisation of the Caribbean.” In Alan Gregor Cobley. Crossroads of Empire: The Europe-Caribbean Connection, 1492-1992. 23-37. Bridgetown: University of the West Indies, 1994.
Benjamin, Thomas. The Atlantic World: Europeans, Africans, Indians and Their Shared History, 1400-1900. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2009.
Biggar, Henry P. The Early Trading Companies of New France: a contribution to the history of commerce and discovery in North America. New York: Argonaut Press, 1965.
Blansett, Lisa. “John Smith Maps Virginia: Knowledge, Rhetoric, and Politics.” In Robert Appelbaum and John W. Sweet. Envisioning an English Empire, 68-91. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 2005.
Bond, Edward L. Damned Souls in a Tobacco Company: Religion in Seventeenth-CenturyVirginia. Macon:Mercer University Press, 2000.
Boucher, Philip. “Revisioning the ‘French Atlantic’: or. How to Think about the French
Presence in the Atlantic 1550-1625.” In Peter Mancall. The Atlantic World and Virginia, 1550-1624. 274-306. Chapel Hill: Omohundro Institute of Early American history and Culture, 2007.
Bourque, Bruce J. and Ruth H. Whitehead, “Trade and alliances in the contact period.” In Emerson W. Baker. American Beginnings: Exploration, Culture, and Cartography in the Land of Norumbega. Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 1994.
Braddick, Michael. “Civility and Authority.” In David Armitage & Michael Braddick. The British Atlantic World, 1500-1800. 93-112. New York: Palgrave Macmillan, 2009.
Brain, Jeffrey P., Peter Morrison, and Pamela Crane. Fort St. George: Archaeological Investigation of the 1607-1608 Popham Colony on the Kennebec River in Maine. Augusta: Maine State Museum, 2007.
Brazeau, Brian. Writing a New France, 1604-1632: Empire and early modern French Identity. Farnham: Ashgate, 2009.
Brown, Alexander. The First Republic in America. Boston: Houghton, Mifflin and Co, 1898.
Brown, Alexander. The Genesis of the United States; A Narrative of the Movement in England, 1605-1616, Which Resulted in the Plantation of North America by Englishmen, Disclosing the Contest between England and Spain for the Possession of the Soil Now Occupied by the United States of America. New York: Russell & Russell, 1964.
Burnard, Trevor. “The British Atlantic.” In Jack P. Greene and Philip D. Morgan. Atlantic History: A Critical Appraisal. 111-137. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2009.
Bushnell, Amy T. “Indigenous America and the Limits of the Atlantic World.” In Jack P. Greene and Philip D. Morgan. Atlantic History: A Critical Appraisal. 191-222. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2009.
Calloway, Colin G. New Worlds for All: Indians, Europeans, and the Remaking of Early America. Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 1997.
Canny, Nicholas P. Kingdom and Colony. Baltimore: The Johns Hopkins University Press, 1988.
Canny, Nicholas P. Making Ireland British:1580-1650. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2001.
Canny, Nicholas P. The Elizabethan Conquest of Ireland: A Pattern Established 1565-1576. New York: Harper & Row, 1976.
Cave, Alfred A. “Why Was the Sagadahoc Colony Abandoned? An Evaluation of the Evidence.” New England Quarterly 68, 4 (1995): 625-640.
Chaplin, Joyce. “The British Atlantic.” In Nicholas Canny and Philip Morgan. The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World. 219-235. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2011.
Chavez, John R. Beyond Nations: Evolving Homelands in the North Atlantic World, 1400-2000. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2009.
Choquette, Leslie. Frenchmen into Peasants: Modernity and Tradition in the peopling of French Canada. Cambridge: Harvard University Press, 1997.
Colley, Linda. Captives: Britain, Empire, and the World, 1600-1850. New York: Anchor Books, 2004.
Conforti, Joseph A. Saints and Strangers: New England in British North America. Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 2006.
Cook, Peter. “Kings, Captains, and Kin: French Views of Native American Political Cultures in the Sixteenth and Early Seventeenth Centuries.” In Peter Mancall. The Atlantic World and Virginia, 1550-1624. 307-341. Chapel Hill: Omohundro Institute of Early American history and Culture, 2007.
D’Abate, Richard and Victor A. Konrad, “General Introduction.” In Emerson W. Baker. American Beginnings: Exploration, Culture, and Cartography in the Land of Norumbega. Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 1994.
Devitt, E.I “Axacan: The Martyrs of the Rappahannock.” ACHS 19 (1908): 1-17
Dubois, Laurent. “The French Atlantic.” In Jack P. Greene and Philip D. Morgan. Atlantic History: A Critical Appraisal. 137-162. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2009.
Eccles, W.J. The French in North America 1500-1783. East Lansing: Michigan State University Press, 1998.
Fischer, David Hackett. Champlain’s Dream. New York: Simon & Schuster, 2008.
Edwards, Jess. “Between ‘Plain Wilderness’ and ‘Goodly Corn Fields’: Representing Land Use in Early Virginia.” In Robert Appelbaum and John W. Sweet. Envisioning an English Empire. 217-235. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 2005.
Elliott, J.H. Empires of the Atlantic World: Britain and Spain in America 1492-1830. New Haven: Yale University Press, 2006.
Fagan, Brian M. The Little Ice Age: How Climate Made History, 1300-1850. New York: Basic Books, 2000.
Fitzmaurice, Andrew. “The Commercial Ideology of Colonization in Jacobean England: Robert Johnson, Giovanni Botero, and the Pursuit of Greatness.” William and Mary Quarterly 64, 4 (2007): 791-820.
Gallivan, Martin D. James River Chiefdoms: The Rise of Social Inequality in the Chesapeake. Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 2003.
Games, Alison, Philip J. Stern, Paul W. Mapp, and Peter A. Coclanis, “Forum: Beyond the Atlantic.” William and Mary Quarterly 63, 4 (2006): 675-743.
Games, Alison. The Web of Empire: English Cosmopolitans in an Age of Expansion 1560-1660. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2008.
Ganong, William. Champlain’s Island: an expanded edition of Ste. Croix (Dochet) Island. Saint John: New Brunswick Museum, 2003.
Goldman, William S. “Spain and the Founding of Jamestown.” William and Mary Quarterly 68, 3 (2011): 427-450.
Greenblatt, Stephen. Marvelous Possessions: The Wonder of the New World. Chicago: Chicago University Press, 1991.
Greene, Jack P. Pursuits of Happiness: The Social Development of Early Modern British Colonies and the Formation of American Culture. Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press, 1988.
Griffin, Eric. “The Spector of Spain in John Smith’s Colonial Writing.” In Robert Appelbaum and John W. Sweet. Envisioning an English Empire. 111-134. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 2005.
Griffiths, Naomi. From migrant to Acadian: a North American Border people, 1604-1755. Montreal: McGill-Queen’s University Press, 2005.
Grizzard, Frank E. and D. Boyd Smith. Jamestown Colony A Political, Social, and Cultural History. Santa Barbara: ABC-CLIO, 2007.
Hadfield, Andrew. “Irish Colonies and the Americas.” In Robert Appelbaum and John W. Sweet. Envisioning an English Empire. 172-194. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 2005.
Haile, Edward Wright. Jamestown Narratives: Eyewitness Accounts of the Virginia Colony, the First Decade, 1607-1617. Champlain: RoundHouse, 1998.
Hart, Jonathan L. Representing the New World: The English and French Uses of the Example of Spain. New York: Palgrave, 2001.
Hatfield, April L. Atlantic Virginia: Intercolonial Relations in the Seventeenth Century. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 2004.
Heidenreich, Conrad and K. Janet Ritch. Samuel de Champlain before 1604: Des Sauvages and Other Documents related to the period. Montreal: McGill-Queen’s University Press, 2010.
Horn, James. A Kingdom Strange The Brief and Tragic History of the Lost Colony of Roanoke. New York: Basic Books, 2010.
Horn, James D. A Land as God Made it: Jamestown and the Birth of America. New York: Basic Books, 2005.
Hornsby, Stephen and Michael Hermann. British Atlantic, American Frontier: Spaces of Power in Early Modern British America. Hanover: University of New England, 2005.
Hubbard, William. The History of the Indian Wars in New England: From the First Settlement to the Termination of the War With King Philip, in 1677. Baltimore: Genealogical Publishing Company, 2002.
Hunter, Douglas. “Was New France born in England?” Beaver 86, 6 (January 2007): 39-44.
Jaenen, Cornelius J. Friend and foe: aspects of French-Amerindian cultural contact in the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries. New York: Columbia University Press, 1976
Jones, Elizabeth. Gentlemen and Jesuits: Glory and adventure in the early days of Acadia. Halifax: Nimbus, 2002.
Jones, Elizabeth. Gentlemen and Jesuits. Toronto: University of Toronto Press 1986.
Jordan, Constance. “Jamestown and Its North Atlantic World.” In Robert Appelbaum and John W. Sweet. Envisioning an English Empire. 275-288. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 2005.
Kerr, W.P. Port-Royal Habitation: the story of the French and Mi’kmaq at Port-Royal, 1604-1613. Halifax: Nimbus, 2005.
Kelso, William B. Jamestown, the Buried Truth. Charlottesville: University of Virginia Press, 2006.
Klooster, Wim. “The Northern European Atlantic World.” In Nicholas Canny and Philip Morgan. The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World. 165-183. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2011.
Knecht, Robert. The French Civil Wars 1562-1598. New York: Pearson Education, 2000.
Kupperman, Karen O. Indian & English Facing off in Early America. London: Cornell University Press, 2000.
Kupperman, Karen O. Roanoke: The Abandoned Colony 2nd Ed. Lanham: Rowman & Littlefield, 2007.
Kupperman, Karen O. “The Early Modern Atlantic World.” An NYU Silver Dialogue. April 2012. http://silverdialogues.fas.nyu.edu/docs/IO/24517/kupperman.pdf.
Kupperman, Karen O. The JamesTown Project. Cambridge: Belknap Press, 2007.
MacMillan, Ken. Sovereignty and Possession in the English New World: the legal foundations of empire, 1576-1640. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. 2006.
Mancke, Elizabeth. “Chartered Enterprises and the Evolution of the British Atlantic World.” In Elizabeth Mancke and Carole Shammas. The Creation of the British Atlantic World. 237-263. Baltimore: The Johns Hopkins University Press, 2005.
Mancke, Elizabeth. “Empire and State.” In David Armitage & Michael Braddick. The British Atlantic World, 1500-1800. 193-213. New York: Palgrave Macmillan, 2009.
Martin, Calvin. Keepers of the Games: Indian-animal relationships and the fur trade. Berkeley: University of California Press, 1978.
Marzagalli, Silvia. “The French Atlantic world in the Seventeenth and Eighteenth Centuries.” In Nicholas Canny and Philip Morgan. The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World. 235-251. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2011.
Mattingly, Garrett. The Armada. Boston: Houghton Mifflin, 1959.
Nichols, Allen Bryant. Captain Christopher Newport: Admiral of Virginia. Newport News: Sea Venture, 2007.
Pagden, Anthony. Lords of All The World: Ideologies of Empire in Spain, Britain and France, 1500-1800. New Haven: Yale University Press, 1995.
Pagden, Anthony and Nicholas Canny. “Afterword: From Identity to Independence.” In Nicholas P. Canny and Anthony Pagden. Colonial Identity in the Atlantic World, 1500-1800. 267-278. Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1987.
Paquet, Gilles and Jean-Pierre Wallot. “Nouvelle-France/Quebec/Canada: A World of Limited Identities.” In Nicholas P. Canny and Anthony Pagden. Colonial Identity in the Atlantic World, 1500-1800. 95-114. Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1987.
Parkman, Francis. The Jesuits in North America in the Seventeenth Century. Boston: Little, Brown & Company, 1882.
Peace, Tom. “Deconstructing the Sauvage/Savage in the Writing of Samuel de Champlain and Captain John Smith.” French Colonial History 7 (2006):1-20.
Perdue, Theda and Michael D. Green. The Columbia Guide to American Indians of the Southeast. New York: Columbia University Press, 2005.
Pestana, Carla G. “Religion.” In David Armitage, Michael J. Braddick. The British Atlantic World, 1500-1800. 71-92. New York: Palgrave Macmillan, 2009.
Pickett, Margaret F. and Dwayne W. Pickett. The European Struggle to Settle North America: Colonizing Attempts by England, France and Spain, 1521-1608. Jefferson: McFarland, 2011.
Pope, Peter. Fish into wine: the Newfoundland plantation in the seventeenth century. Chapel Hill, University of North Carolina Press, 2004.
Pritchard, James. In Search of Empire: The French In North America. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2004.
Quinn, David B. England and the Discovery of America, 1481-1620, From the Bristol Voyages of the Fifteenth Century to the Pilgrim Settlement at Plymouth: the Exploration, Exploitation, and Trial-and-Error Colonization of North America by the English. New York: Knopf, 1974.
Quinn, David B. “Englishmen and Others.” In David B. Quinn. European Approaches to North America, 1450-1640. Brookfield: Ashgate, 1998.
Quinn, David B. Explorers and Colonies: America 1500-1625. London: The Hambledon Press, 1990.
Quinn, David B. North America from Earliest Discovery to First Settlements: The Norse Voyages to 1612. New York: Harper & Row, 1977.
Quinn, David B. Set Fair for Roanoke: Voyages and Colonies, 1584-1606. Chapel Hill: North Carolina Press, 1985.
Quinn, David B. The Elizabethans and the Irish. Ithica: Cornell University Press, 1966.
Quinn, David B., and Alison M. Quinn. The English New England Voyages, 1602-1608. London: Hakluyt Society, 1983.
Quinn, David B, Alison M. Quinn, and Susan Hillier. New American World A Documentary History of North America to 1612 Volume 3: English Plans for North America. The Roanoke Voyages. New England Ventures. New York: Arno Press, 1979.
Quinn, David B, Alison M. Quinn, and Susan Hillier. New American World: A Documentary History of North America to 1612: Volume 4: Newfoundland from Fishery to Colony. Northwest Passage Searches. New York: Arno Press, 1979.
Quinn, David B, Alison M. Quinn, and Susan Hillier. New American World: A Documentary History of North America to 1612: Volume 5: The Extension of Settlement in Florida, Virginia, and the Spanish Southwest. New York: Arno Press, 1979.
Quinn, David B., and A. N. Ryan. England's Sea Empire, 1550-1642. London: G. Allen & Unwin, 1983.
Redmond, Elsa M, and Jay Kislak. Chiefdoms and Chieftaincy in the Americas. Gainesville: University Press of Florida, 1998.
Reid, John. “Political Definitions: Creating Maine and Acadia.” In Emerson W. Baker. American Beginnings: Exploration, Culture, and Cartography in the Land of Norumbega. Lincoln: University of Nebraska Press, 1994.
Reid John and Emerson Baker. Essays on Northeastern North America, Seventeenth and Eighteenth Centuries. Toronto: University of Toronto Press, 2008.
Rice, Douglas W. The Life and Achievements of Sir John Popham, 1531-1607: Leading to the Establishment of the First English Colony in New England. Madison: Fairleigh Dickinson University Press, 2005.
Rice, James D. “Escape from Tsenacommacah: Chesapeake Algonquians and the Powhatan Menace.” In Peter Mancall. The Atlantic World and Virginia, 1550-1624. 97-142. Chapel Hill: Omohundro Institute of Early American history and Culture, 2007.
Rice, James D. Nature and History in the Potomac Country: From Hunter-Gatherers to the Age of Jefferson. Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 2009.
Richter, Daniel K. Facing East from Indian Country: A Native History of Early America. Cambridge: Harvard University Press, 2001.
Richter, Daniel K. “Tsenacommacah and the Atlantic World.” In Peter Mancall. The AtlanticWorld and Virginia, 1550-1624. 29-65. Chapel Hill: Omohundro Institute of Early American history and Culture, 2007.
Rountree, Helen C. “Who Were the Powhatans and Did They Have a Unified ‘Foreign Policy’?” In Helen C. Rountree. Powhatan Foreign Relations 1500-1722. 1-19. Charlottesville: University Press of Virginia, 1993.
Rountree, Helen C. and Randolph Turner. Before and After Jamestown: Virginia’s Powhatans and Their Predecessors. Gainesville: University Press of Florida, 2002.
Roundtree, Helen C. Pocahontas’s People: The Powhatan Indians of Virginia through Four Centuries. Norman: University of Oklahoma Press, 1990.
Rountree, Helen C. Pocahontas, Powhatan, Opechancanough: three Indian lives changed by Jamestown. Charlottesville: University of Virginia Press, 2005.
Rountree, Helen C. Powhatan Foreign Relations 1500-1722. Charlottesville: University Press of Virginia, 1993.
Rountree, Helen C. and Randolph Turner. “The Evolution of the Powhatan Paramount Chiefdom in Virginia.” In Elsa Redmond. Chiefdoms and Chieftaincy in the Americas. Gainesville: University of Florida, 1998.
Sayre, Gordon M. Les Sauvages Americains: Representations of Native Americans in French and English colonial literature. Chapel Hill: University of Carolina Press, 1997.
Sayre, Gordon M. “Les Sauvages americains”: representations of Native Americans in narratives of colonial Virginia and New France. PhD diss., State University of New York at Buffalo, 1993.
Schmidt, Daniel. “Subsistence fishing at Jamestown, 1607–24.” Post-Medieval Archaeology 40, 1 (2006): 80-95.
Seed, Patricia. Ceremonies of Possession in Europe's Conquest of the New World, 1492-1640. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1995.
Snow, Dean R. “The Ethnohistoric Baseline of the Eastern Abenaki Ethnohistory.” Ethnohistory 23, 3 (Summer, 1976): 291-306.
Steele, Ian. Warpaths: Invasions of North America. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1994.
Stern, Philip J. “British Asia and British Atlantic: Comparisons and Connections.” William and Mary Quarterly 63, 4 (2006): 693-712.
Sullivan, James. “A Topographical Description of Georgetown.” In Massachusetts Historical Society Collections 1st series, 1 (1792): 251-255.
Sullivan, James. The History of the District of Maine. Boston: I Thomas and E.T. Andrews, 1795.
Terraciano, Kevin. “Voices from the Other Side: Native Perspectives from New Spain, Peru, and North America.” In Nicholas Canny and Philip Morgan. The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World. 252-270. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2011.
Thorp, Daniel B. “Equals of the King: The Balance of Power in Early Acadia.” Acadiensis 25, 2 (Spring 1996): 3-17.
Trigger, Bruce G. Natives and Newcomers: Canada’s “Heroic Age” Reconsidered. Kingston: McGill-Queen’s University Press, 1985.
Trudel, Marcel. Histoire De La Nouvelle-France: II Le Comptoir 1604-1627, Volume II. Montreal: Fides, 1966.
Trudel, Marcel. The Beginnings of New France, 1524-1663. Toronto: McClelland and Stewart, 1973.
Turner, Randolph. “Native American Protohistoric Interactions in the Powhatan Core Area.” In Helen C. Rountree. Powhatan Foreign Relations 1500-1722. 76-93. Charlottesville: University Press of Virginia, 1993.
Ubelaker, Douglas H. “Human biology of Virginia Indians,” In Helen C. Rountree. Powhatan Foreign Relations 1500-1722. 53-75. Charlottesville: University Press of Virginia, 1993.
Wallis, Wilson and Ruth Wallis. The Micmac Indians of Eastern Canada. Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press, 1955.
Whitehead, Neil L. “Native Americans and Europeans: Early Encounters in the Caribbean and along the Atlantic Coast.” In Nicholas Canny and Philip Morgan. The Oxford Handbook of The Atlantic World. 55-70. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2011.
Wicken, William. Encounters with Tall Sails and Tall Tailes: Mi’kmaq Society, 1500-1760. Thesis, McGill University Montreal Februrary 1994.
Williams, Penry. The Later Tudors: England, 1547-1603. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1995.
Wood, Peter H. “From Atlantic History to a Continental Approach.” In Jack P. Greene and Philip D. Morgan. Atlantic History: A Critical Appraisal. 279-298. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2009.
top related